Selected quad for the lemma: spirit_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
spirit_n jesus_n zeal_n zealous_a 49 3 9.2178 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
B10040 The perfection of justification maintained against the Pharise the purity of sanctification against the stainers of it: the unquestionablenesse of a future glorification aganst the Sadduce: in severall sermons. Together with an apologeticall answer to the ministers of the new province of London in vindication of the author against their aspersions. / by John Simpson, an unworthy publisher of gospel-truths in London. Simpson, John, 17th cent. 1648 (1648) Wing S3817A; ESTC R184177 253,105 558

There are 48 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

as_o our_o mediator_n 1_o tim._n 2.5_o if_o he_o mean_v that_o which_o they_o draw_v from_o his_o word_n he_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n in_o all_o his_o sermon_n and_o his_o faith_n be_v a_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o they_o wrest_v from_o his_o word_n be_v not_o his_o meaning_n second_o paul_n meaning_n be_v this_o that_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v know_v after_o the_o flesh_n as_o though_o any_o man_n shall_v conceive_v that_o they_o shall_v have_v any_o privilege_n or_o prerogative_n above_o another_o in_o christ_n because_o they_o be_v his_o kinsman_n or_o countryman_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n or_o of_o the_o same_o stock_n with_o christ_n be_v descend_v from_o abraham_n or_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n thus_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v know_v after_o the_o flesh_n it_o will_v avail_v man_n nothing_o that_o they_o be_v near_o to_o christ_n in_o the_o flesh_n by_o their_o natural_a birth_n unless_o they_o be_v near_o to_o christ_n and_o one_o with_o christ_n by_o their_o new_a birth_n so_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v in_o this_o place_n take_v away_o the_o difference_n which_o some_o may_v apprehend_v to_o be_v between_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o gentile_a it_o be_v parallel_n to_o that_o place_n gal._n 3.28_o there_o be_v neither_o jew_n nor_o greek_a there_o be_v neither_o bond_n nor_o free_a there_o be_v neither_o male_a nor_o female_a for_o you_o be_v all_o one_o in_o christ_n jesus_n and_o this_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o precedent_a verse_n where_o he_o say_v that_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o for_o gentile_n as_o well_o as_o for_o jew_n so_o that_o a_o jew_n may_v as_o soon_o be_v save_v by_o christ_n as_o a_o gentile_a if_o he_o rest_v upon_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o father_n through_o the_o redemption_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n his_o son_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n it_o will_v likewise_o appear_v to_o be_v the_o plain_a and_o naked_a meaning_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o we_o consider_v the_o subsequent_a word_n where_o he_o do_v publish_v forth_o the_o same_o thing_n and_o explain_v his_o meaning_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_n the_o world_n to_o himself_o not_o impute_v their_o trespass_n unto_o they_o the_o sinful_a gentile_n who_o be_v call_v the_o world_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v god_n peculiar_a and_o select_a people_n gather_v out_o of_o the_o world_n from_o other_o nation_n god_n be_v reconcile_v to_o this_o world_n to_o sinful_a gentile_n as_o well_o as_o to_o god_n own_o people_n the_o jew_n and_o therefore_o christ_n be_v not_o to_o be_v know_v among_o christian_n in_o any_o carnal_a or_o fleshly_a relation_n as_o though_o he_o be_v a_o saviour_n more_o to_o the_o jew_n then_o to_o the_o gentile_n this_o be_v to_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n but_o we_o that_o know_v he_o spiritual_o know_v he_o so_o no_o more_o for_o in_o the_o spirit_n we_o see_v the_o partition_n wall_n which_o be_v between_o jew_n and_o gentile_n pull_v down_o and_o know_v christ_n the_o common_a saviour_n both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_n which_o shall_v believe_v in_o his_o name_n and_o thus_o i_o have_v give_v you_o a_o answer_n full_o satisfactory_a to_o their_o second_o objection_n the_o three_o place_n from_o which_o they_o frame_v a_o objection_n be_v in_o eccles_n 3.19_o that_o which_o befall_v unto_o the_o son_n of_o man_n befall_v beast_n even_o one_o thing_n befall_v they_o as_o the_o one_o die_v so_o die_v the_o other_o yea_o they_o have_v all_o one_o breath_n so_o that_o a_o man_n have_v no_o pre-eminence_n above_o a_o beast_n to_o this_o i_o thus_o answer_v that_o solomon_n here_o do_v not_o propose_v this_o as_o his_o own_o judgement_n but_o rather_o do_v represent_v unto_o we_o the_o opinion_n of_o carnal_a man_n who_o have_v no_o great_a light_n than_o the_o dim_a eye_n of_o reason_n and_o do_v acquaint_v we_o with_o their_o folly_n and_o ignorance_n by_o communicate_v his_o own_o experience_n unto_o we_o i_o say_v in_o my_o heart_n ver_fw-la 18._o he_o speak_v this_o in_o his_o heart_n when_o the_o darkness_n of_o his_o spirit_n do_v as_o a_o thick_a cloud_n hide_v the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n from_o he_o he_o do_v not_o speak_v this_o from_o his_o heart_n and_o spirit_n enlighten_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n but_o from_o his_o heart_n under_o a_o mist_n of_o error_n be_v surround_v with_o great_a temptation_n and_o this_o will_v appear_v by_o many_o passage_n which_o he_o utter_v in_o this_o book_n which_o do_v whole_o contradict_v that_o which_o they_o will_v gather_v from_o these_o word_n as_o the_o meaning_n of_o solomon_n for_o the_o overthrow_v of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n for_o instance_n ecc_n 11.9_o how_o do_v he_o labour_n to_o draw_v young_a man_n from_o the_o pursuit_n of_o the_o world_n pleasure_n and_o vanity_n by_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n that_o god_n will_v bring_v they_o unto_o judgement_n and_o what_o a_o plain_a place_n be_v that_o against_o sadducee_n familist_n and_o libertine_n that_o deny_v a_o judgement_n day_n and_o a_o resurrection_n with_o which_o he_o do_v put_v a_o period_n to_o this_o book_n ecc_n 12._o and_o the_o last_o god_n shall_v bring_v every_o work_n into_o judgement_n with_o every_o secret_a thing_n whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o whether_o it_o be_v evil_a i_o shall_v not_o trouble_v you_o with_o any_o more_o of_o their_o argument_n because_o they_o be_v of_o the_o same_o nature_n with_o those_o which_o have_v be_v bring_v already_o and_o the_o same_o answer_n which_o have_v be_v give_v unto_o these_o will_v give_v sufficient_a satisfaction_n to_o any_o other_o objection_n which_o may_v be_v bring_v against_o this_o truth_n 2._o use_v from_o this_o error_n again_o since_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n appear_v so_o clear_a in_o scripture_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n and_o of_o the_o same_o body_n let_v we_o abhor_v and_o abandon_v the_o gross_a fanatical_a conceit_n of_o all_o that_o we_o meet_v with_o that_o profess_v themselves_o open_a enemy_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n brethren_n i_o beseech_v you_o loath_a abhor_v and_o detest_v this_o hellish_a diabolical_a doctrine_n for_o as_o christian_n be_v to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n with_o all_o zeal_n and_o affection_n of_o spirit_n so_o we_o be_v to_o detest_v and_o abhor_v all_o error_n that_o oppose_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n with_o all_o zeal_n and_o fervency_n of_o spirit_n though_o these_o be_v much_o offend_v with_o the_o zeal_n and_o sharpness_n of_o the_o saint_n suppose_v that_o such_o heat_n and_o holy_a anger_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o spirit_n of_o meekness_n and_o therefore_o if_o a_o man_n though_o in_o the_o spirit_n witness_v against_o these_o conceit_n and_o atheistical_a opinion_n of_o they_o present_o they_o say_v that_o though_o he_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o christ_n and_o to_o have_v the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n yet_o he_o have_v not_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o be_v so_o sharp_a in_o his_o speech_n but_o consider_v how_o our_o bless_a saviour_n oft_o in_o his_o preach_n and_o discourse_n thunder_n and_o lighten_v in_o the_o face_n of_o man_n that_o oppose_v the_o truth_n do_v he_o not_o call_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n a_o generation_n of_o viper_n and_o adulterer_n to_o their_o face_n and_o have_v not_o paul_n and_o peter_n expression_n to_o this_o purpose_n peter_n tell_v simon_n magus_n he_o be_v in_o the_o very_a gall_n of_o bitterness_n do_v not_o paul_n call_v elymas_n the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o enemy_n of_o all_o righteousness_n act._n 13.10_o and_o our_o saviour_n tell_v the_o hypocrite_n that_o he_o preach_v to_o joh._n 8._o you_o be_v of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n therefore_o know_v that_o as_o christ_n though_o he_o have_v the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o he_o yet_o he_o make_v use_v of_o such_o sharp_a and_o bitter_a speech_n so_o a_o man_n may_v have_v such_o speech_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o yet_o he_o may_v be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o speak_v to_o god_n glory_n when_o he_o thus_o speak_v the_o angel_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n be_v commend_v that_o he_o can_v not_o bear_v with_o those_o that_o be_v evil_a and_o that_o he_o hate_v the_o work_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n himself_o and_o our_o saviour_n do_v profess_v his_o hatred_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o nicolaitan_n and_o why_o shall_v a_o christian_a be_v afraid_a to_o imitate_v his_o saviour_n though_o these_o will_v censure_v he_o for_o it_o if_o this_o be_v to_o be_v vile_a and_o without_o love_n to_o speak_v bitter_o
from_o whence_o i_o frame_v my_o argument_n thus_o that_o covenant_n which_o require_v work_n and_o not_o faith_n for_o justification_n be_v not_o a_o covenant_n of_o grace_n but_o the_o law_n require_v work_n and_o not_o faith_n for_o justification_n and_o therefore_o the_o law_n be_v not_o a_o covenant_n of_o grace_n but_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v mistake_v in_o what_o i_o have_v here_o speak_v i_o shall_v lay_v down_o such_o caution_n which_o be_v lay_v down_o when_o i_o handle_v the_o point_n more_o large_o first_o though_o i_o deny_v the_o law_n to_o be_v a_o rule_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o letter_n upon_o mount_n sinai_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v the_o matter_n &_o substance_n of_o it_o in_o the_o spirit_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o mighty_a counsellor_n and_o great_a lawgiver_n our_o lord_n jesus_n isa_n 33.22_o i_o do_v subscribe_v unto_o that_o as_o a_o truth_n which_o be_v deliver_v by_o zanchius_n that_o this_o difference_n of_o divine_a law_n be_v not_o so_o much_o from_o the_o various_a substance_n of_o the_o law_n or_o diversity_n of_o time_n as_o from_o the_o various_a reason_n with_o which_o they_o be_v promulgate_v by_o god_n and_o exhibit_v to_o the_o church_n differentia_fw-la haec_fw-la legum_fw-la divinarum_fw-la non_fw-la tam_fw-la a_o variâ_fw-la legum_fw-la substantiâ_fw-la temporumve_fw-la diversitate_fw-la quam_fw-la a_o variis_fw-la rationibus_fw-la quibus_fw-la illae_fw-la fuerunt_fw-la a_o deo_fw-la promulgatae_fw-la atque_fw-la exhibitae_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la i_o do_v acknowledge_v with_o paul_n that_o in_o the_o mind_n i_o myself_o do_v serve_v the_o law_n of_o god_n not_o only_o by_o believe_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n through_o christ_n for_o justification_n but_o by_o love_a god_n and_o my_o brother_n by_o a_o sanctify_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n in_o i_o i_o confess_v that_o the_o law_n be_v old_a for_o the_o matter_n &_o substance_n of_o it_o as_o it_o command_v love_n to_o god_n and_o our_o neighbour_n and_o yet_o it_o be_v new_a in_o we_o and_o to_o we_o as_o it_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o that_o of_o john_n a_o new_a commandment_n to_o wit_n of_o love_n i_o write_v unto_o you_o which_o be_v true_a in_o he_o and_o in_o you_o 1_o john_n 2.8_o 2_o lie_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o this_o law_n write_v or_o preach_v may_v be_v call_v the_o external_a rule_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o we_o be_v the_o internal_a and_o powerful_a rule_n and_o that_o i_o may_v not_o now_o be_v censure_v as_o i_o have_v former_o be_v by_o some_o when_o i_o have_v speak_v unto_o they_o concern_v the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n i_o shall_v speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o another_o who_o you_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v sound_a in_o the_o faith_n &_o not_o in_o my_o own_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o will_n of_o god_n but_o imprint_v in_o vivified_a heart_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o do_v not_o only_o true_o know_v god_n and_o piety_n and_o equity_n but_o we_o be_v so_o move_v to_o fear_v he_o to_o trust_v in_o he_o to_o love_v he_o to_o worship_n and_o adore_v he_o and_o to_o love_v and_o serve_v our_o neighbour_n and_o to_o mortify_v ourselves_o and_o to_o bear_v valiant_o all_o persecution_n for_o god_n and_o to_o lead_v a_o life_n in_o christ_n that_o we_o willing_o run_v to_o the_o do_v of_o these_o thing_n ad_fw-la substantiam_fw-la autem_fw-la quod_fw-la attinet_fw-la lex_fw-la ista_fw-la spiritus_fw-la nihil_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la voluntas_fw-la dei_fw-la sed_fw-la cordibus_fw-la per_fw-la spiritum_fw-la sanctum_fw-la vivifiatis_fw-la impressa_fw-la quâ_fw-la non_fw-la solum_fw-la novimus_fw-la veer_fw-la deum_fw-la pietatemque_fw-la &_o aequitatem_fw-la sed_fw-la etiam_fw-la ad_fw-la eum_fw-la timendum_fw-la ei_fw-la fidendum_fw-la eum_fw-la amandum_fw-la colendum_fw-la adorandum_fw-la ad_fw-la proximum_fw-la item_n diligendum_fw-la eique_fw-la inserviendum_fw-la denique_fw-la ad_fw-la nostri_fw-la mortificationem_fw-la ad_fw-la mala_fw-la omne_fw-la propter_fw-la deum_fw-la fortiter_fw-la perferenda_fw-la et_fw-la ad_fw-la vitam_fw-la tantum_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la traducendam_fw-la ita_fw-la impellimur_fw-la ut_fw-la ultró_n accurramus_fw-la zanc._n 3_o i_o do_v grant_v that_o moses_n do_v acquaint_v the_o people_n with_o jesus_n christ_n after_o he_o have_v deliver_v the_o law_n of_o work_n unto_o they_o which_o be_v evident_a by_o that_o passage_n in_o deut._n 18._o when_o the_o people_n be_v terrify_v at_o the_o give_v of_o the_o law_n desire_v that_o they_o may_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o lord_n no_o more_o god_n do_v affirm_v in_o the_o 17._o vers_fw-la that_o they_o have_v speak_v well_o and_o in_o the_o 18._o verse_n do_v give_v they_o a_o promise_n of_o christ_n i_o will_v raise_v they_o up_o a_o prophet_n from_o among_o their_o brethren_n like_v unto_o thou_o and_o will_v put_v my_o word_n in_o his_o mouth_n and_o he_o shall_v speak_v unto_o they_o all_o that_o i_o shall_v command_v he_o etc._n etc._n which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o wipe_v away_o the_o dirt_n and_o filth_n which_o be_v throw_v upon_o i_o by_o some_o scurrilous_a pamphleteer_n with_o who_o name_n i_o will_v not_o burden_n the_o page_n who_o have_v assert_v that_o i_o deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o gospel_n or_o covenant_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o that_o man_n be_v then_o save_v by_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n though_o i_o can_v in_o truth_n profess_v that_o by_o my_o best_a remembrance_n at_o the_o present_a i_o can_v remember_v that_o ever_o i_o be_v tempt_v to_o think_v any_o such_o thing_n since_o i_o receive_v any_o spiritual_a light_n for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o thus_o much_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o this_o article_n i_o shall_v not_o need_v to_o speak_v much_o to_o the_o three_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o any_o rational_a man_n to_o gather_v my_o meaning_n of_o it_o from_o what_o have_v be_v deliver_v in_o open_v of_o my_o mind_n concern_v the_o second_o branch_n the_o law_n in_o the_o new_a covenant_n be_v that_o by_o which_o a_o christian_a do_v examine_v his_o life_n he_o live_v but_o under_o one_o covenant_n for_o justification_n &_o sanctification_n when_o he_o live_v as_o a_o spiritual_a man_n ought_v to_o live_v he_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n again_o to_o fear_v but_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n by_o which_o he_o cry_v abba_n father_n rom._n 8.15_o but_o if_o he_o shall_v examine_v his_o life_n by_o the_o law_n as_o deliver_v in_o sinai_n he_o will_v fear_v again_o for_o that_o law_n work_v fear_n and_o horror_n in_o those_o who_o be_v under_o it_o suppose_v a_o man_n shall_v command_v his_o son_n and_o his_o slave_n the_o same_o thing_n for_o substance_n and_o withal_o shall_v inform_v his_o son_n that_o if_o he_o shall_v not_o obey_v his_o command_n he_o shall_v displease_v a_o love_a father_n but_o if_o the_o slave_n shall_v not_o obey_v his_o command_n he_o shall_v lose_v his_o life_n by_o his_o disobedience_n will_v not_o any_o man_n affirm_v that_o these_o two_o do_v examine_v themselves_o by_o the_o same_o rule_n of_o their_o obedience_n thus_o it_o be_v in_o the_o point_n in_o hand_n god_n command_v love_n in_o the_o first_o covenant_n with_o threaten_n of_o death_n and_o condemnation_n for_o disobedience_n and_o in_o the_o second_o covenant_n we_o be_v assure_v that_o we_o be_v pass_v from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n and_o that_o nothing_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o our_o father_n in_o christ_n jesus_n rom._n 8._o yet_o this_o be_v make_v know_v unto_o we_o that_o though_o by_o sin_n we_o shall_v not_o total_o fall_v from_o grace_n and_o fall_v under_o condemnation_n yet_o we_o may_v offend_v our_o father_n and_o grieve_v his_o holy_a spirit_n by_o which_o we_o be_v seal_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n whether_o these_o two_o have_v the_o same_o rule_n give_v unto_o they_o for_o the_o examination_n of_o their_o life_n i_o will_v leave_v it_o to_o those_o who_o have_v spiritual_a eye_n in_o their_o head_n to_o judge_v to_o who_o it_o will_v be_v evident_a that_o saint_n do_v not_o fall_v from_o grace_n to_o the_o law_n when_o they_o examine_v themselves_o but_o they_o examine_v themselves_o how_o they_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n which_o be_v sum_v up_o in_o few_o word_n by_o the_o apostle_n john_n to_o wit_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o to_o love_v one_o another_o as_o he_o give_v we_o commandment_n i_o shall_v now_o fall_v upon_o the_o four_o branch_n of_o this_o article_n and_o shall_v desire_v my_o reader_n to_o
that_o the_o law_n kill_v a_o man_n or_o cut_v off_o his_o leg_n friend_n i_o be_o persuade_v that_o some_o of_o you_o have_v experimental_o find_v as_o i_o have_v do_v that_o the_o law_n kill_v and_o when_o you_o be_v slay_v and_o kill_v by_o the_o law_n be_v you_o free_v present_o from_o the_o mandatory_a power_n of_o it_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o some_o of_o you_o can_v profess_v in_o truth_n with_o i_o that_o you_o be_v not_o the_o law_n than_o do_v command_v you_o to_o do_v and_o walk_v what_o horridnesse_n be_v there_o more_o in_o this_o if_o i_o may_v make_v the_o comparison_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o law_n cut_v off_o a_o man_n leg_n and_o then_o bid_v he_o to_o walk_v then_o in_o this_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o law_n kill_v a_o man_n &_o do_v yet_o bid_v he_o to_o do_v it_o and_o walk_v object_n but_o some_o may_v say_v that_o paul_n say_v that_o the_o letter_n kill_v because_o it_o give_v not_o strength_n to_o fulfil_v it_o litera_fw-la occidit_fw-la nempe_fw-la quia_fw-la non_fw-la consert_v vires_fw-la ad_fw-la praestandum_fw-la answ_n i_o speak_v it_o in_o this_o sense_n too_o and_o be_v it_o not_o lawful_a for_o i_o to_o imitate_v paul_n expression_n unless_o the_o ignorant_a world_n must_v be_v make_v to_o believe_v that_o my_o speech_n and_o exclamation_n be_v horrid_a and_o blasphemous_a i_o may_v multiply_v argument_n from_o this_o chapter_n if_o i_o shall_v run_v over_o all_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o apostle_n especial_o these_o where_o he_o call_v the_o law_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o ministration_n of_o death_n a_o ministration_n of_o condemnation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d a_o thing_n to_o be_v abolish_v or_o abolish_v and_o do_v away_o and_o whatsoever_o be_v speak_v by_o any_o of_o the_o godly_a for_o the_o make_v good_a of_o these_o expression_n i_o may_v make_v use_n of_o the_o same_o for_o the_o justify_n of_o i_o see_v i_o speak_v they_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o paul_n do_v but_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o i_o speak_v not_o this_o for_o the_o reproach_v of_o you_o but_o the_o vindicate_a of_o wrong_a &_o abuse_a truth_n and_o know_v that_o a_o word_n be_v sufficient_a to_o a_o wise_a man_n when_o a_o thousand_o stripe_n will_v not_o enter_v into_o a_o fool_n i_o shall_v not_o insult_v over_o your_o weakness_n but_o rather_o cover_v it_o as_o far_o as_o i_o may_v without_o injury_n to_o the_o truth_n let_v i_o only_o leave_v this_o word_n to_o your_o consideration_n which_o in_o this_o place_n be_v very_o seasonable_a to_o wit_n that_o it_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v as_o favourable_a in_o interpret_n the_o expression_n of_o spiritual_a man_n in_o their_o writing_n and_o speaking_n now_o as_o in_o interpret_n the_o expression_n of_o those_o spiritual_a man_n who_o be_v now_o with_o the_o lord_n know_v that_o they_o both_o speak_v by_o the_o same_o spirit_n which_o spirit_n do_v retain_v his_o liberty_n to_o speak_v in_o we_o as_o it_o do_v in_o they_o 2._o compare_v this_o speech_n with_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 7.5_o the_o motion_n of_o sin_n which_o be_v by_o the_o law_n which_o will_v sound_v as_o harsh_a as_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o law_n do_v cut_v off_o the_o leg_n of_o sinner_n but_o if_o some_o say_v this_o be_v only_o occasional_o and_o accidental_o man_n run_v the_o more_o into_o sin_n by_o how_o much_o the_o more_o they_o be_v forbid_v to_o commit_v sin_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o poet._n tendimus_fw-la in_fw-la vetitum_fw-la we_o have_v a_o tendency_n in_o we_o to_o that_o which_o be_v forbid_v i_o answer_v that_o the_o same_o exposition_n will_v sufficient_o qualify_v my_o speech_n to_o take_v away_o from_o it_o the_o least_o appearance_n of_o evil_a the_o law_n do_v cut_v off_o a_o man_n leg_n occasional_o and_o accidental_o a_o man_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o corruption_n which_o be_v in_o he_o findeth_z by_o experience_n that_o he_o be_v of_o less_o strength_n to_o run_v in_o the_o way_n of_o god_n the_o more_o he_o do_v endeavour_v to_o get_v strength_n by_o the_o law_n of_o work_n musculus_fw-la compare_v it_o in_o this_o respect_n to_o a_o chaste_a matron_n in_o a_o brothel-house_n which_o by_o her_o good_a advice_n do_v prove_v a_o occasion_n to_o some_o impudent_a whore_n to_o be_v more_o bold_a and_o shameless_a in_o their_o impiety_n have_v the_o spirit_n of_o love_n without_o which_o we_o be_v nothing_o teach_v you_o something_o concern_v this_o speech_n you_o will_v have_v be_v favourable_a in_o interpret_n it_o and_o not_o rigid_o censorious_a in_o condemn_v it_o oh_o that_o you_o who_o seem_v to_o he_o zealous_a for_o the_o law_n will_v consider_v that_o this_o commandment_n to_o wit_n that_o we_o shall_v love_v our_o neighhour_n as_o ourselves_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a commandment_n upon_o which_o all_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n do_v hang_v mat._n 22.40_o and_o then_o how_o will_v you_o dare_v to_o be_v so_o rigid_a and_o uncharitable_a in_o your_o censure_v of_o your_o brethren_n if_o indeed_o you_o have_v receive_v the_o law_n from_o moses_n may_v i_o not_o say_v as_o my_o saviour_n do_v to_o the_o jew_n john_n 7.19_o do_v not_o moses_n give_v you_o the_o law_n and_o yet_o none_o of_o you_o keep_v it_o and_o then_o remember_v what_o the_o apostle_n say_v rom._n 2.13_o that_o not_o the_o hearer_n or_o preacher_n of_o the_o law_n be_v just_a before_o god_n but_o the_o doer_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v be_v justify_v brethren_n i_o be_o not_o such_o a_o enemy_n to_o the_o law_n but_o i_o can_v with_o freedom_n of_o spirit_n make_v use_v of_o that_o pertinent_a portion_n of_o scripture_n unto_o you_o jam._n 2.8_o 9_o if_o you_o fulfil_v the_o royal_a law_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n thou_o shall_v love_v thy_o neighbour_n as_o thyself_o you_o do_v well_o but_o if_o you_o have_v respect_n to_o person_n in_o your_o censure_v &_o judge_v they_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o effect_n deliver_v by_o one_o man_n shall_v be_v account_v sound_n by_o you_o and_o shall_v be_v a_o horrid_a error_n if_o deliver_v by_o another_o man_n you_o commit_v since_o and_o be_v convince_v of_o the_o law_n as_o transgressor_n 3_o dly_z look_v serious_o upon_o those_o word_n of_o paul_n rom._n 5.20_o the_o law_n be_v give_v that_o the_o offence_n may_v abound_v and_o then_o tell_v i_o whether_o there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o figure_n in_o my_o expression_n which_o be_v in_o paul_n and_o why_o may_v i_o not_o make_v use_n of_o a_o figurative_a expression_n as_o well_o as_o paul_n expound_v my_o meaning_n more_o plain_o afterward_o as_o he_o do_v which_o i_o also_o do_v in_o my_o discourse_n calvin_n say_v that_o by_o these_o word_n paul_n do_v simple_o signify_v the_o increase_n of_o the_o knowledge_n and_o pervicacy_n designatur_fw-la hic_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la incrementum_fw-la notitiae_fw-la et_fw-la pervicaciae_fw-la and_o another_o say_v that_o it_o it_o say_v that_o it_o abound_v by_o the_o law_n because_o it_o abound_v in_o our_o knowledge_n of_o it_o ut_fw-la abundare_fw-la agnoscetur_fw-la and_o will_v not_o this_o which_o be_v usual_o speak_v upon_o this_o place_n by_o expositor_n make_v our_o speech_n passeable_a too_o and_o as_o paul_n say_v that_o the_o commandment_n which_o be_v to_o life_n he_o find_v to_o be_v unto_o death_n rom._n 7.10_o so_o may_v not_o i_o say_v that_o the_o law_n which_o be_v for_o holy_a walk_n i_o find_v to_o cut_v off_o my_o leg_n because_o be_v under_o it_o i_o be_v no_o more_o able_a to_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o it_o than_o a_o man_n be_v able_a to_o walk_v without_o leg_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o spiritual_a man_n who_o judge_v all_o thing_n 1_o cor._n 2.15_o to_o judge_v of_o this_o thing_n between_o we_o and_o that_o you_o may_v not_o any_o far_o to_o the_o dishonour_n of_o god_n and_o your_o profession_n the_o prejudice_a of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o my_o ministry_n vent_v forth_o slander_n and_o reproacha_v against_o i_o i_o do_v profess_v that_o i_o be_o not_o conscious_a to_o myself_o of_o deny_v the_o use_n of_o the_o law_n in_o any_o way_n in_o which_o it_o be_v hold_v forth_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n but_o know_v that_o the_o law_n be_v good_a if_o a_o man_n use_v it_o lawful_o know_v this_o that_o the_o law_n be_v not_o make_v for_o a_o righteous_a man_n but_o for_o the_o lawless_a &_o disobedient_a for_o the_o ungodly_a and_o for_o sinner_n for_o the_o unholy_a and_o profane_a for_o murderer_n of_o father_n and_o for_o man-slayer_n for_o whoremonger_n for_o perjure_a person_n and_o liar_n and_o if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v contrary_a to_o sound_v
curse_n but_o for_o believer_n christ_n be_v make_v a_o curse_n and_o have_v free_v they_o from_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n gal._n 3.13_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v not_o liable_a unto_o any_o punishment_n as_o it_o be_v a_o curse_n arg._n 9_o sin_n the_o cause_n of_o legal_a punishment_n be_v take_v away_o the_o effect_n of_o it_o be_v take_v away_o but_o christ_n have_v take_v away_o fin_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o legal_a punishment_n and_o therefore_o he_o have_v take_v away_o the_o effect_n which_o be_v legal_a punishment_n and_o therefore_o one_o speak_v of_o the_o affliction_n of_o saint_n say_v that_o they_o be_v medicine_n not_o punishment_n medicinae_fw-la non_fw-la paena_fw-la naturam_fw-la obtinent_fw-la the_o truth_n of_o this_o argument_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o know_a axiom_n the_o cause_n be_v take_v away_o the_o effect_n be_v take_v away_o sublatâ_fw-la causâ_fw-la tollitur_fw-la effectus_fw-la arg._n 10._o that_o be_v take_v away_o which_o do_v bind_v over_o a_o man_n to_o legal_a punishment_n the_o legal_a punishment_n be_v take_v away_o but_o guilt_n which_o bind_v a_o man_n over_o to_o legal_a punishment_n be_v take_v away_o and_o therefore_o the_o legal_a punishment_n be_v take_v away_o arg._n 11._o god_n do_v as_o full_o forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n as_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o forgive_v the_o trespass_n of_o man_n against_o we_o but_o when_o we_o do_v forgive_v their_o trespass_n we_o be_v not_o afterward_o to_o inflict_v any_o vindicative_a punishment_n upon_o they_o and_o therefore_o god_n do_v so_o full_o forgive_v we_o our_o trespass_n that_o he_o do_v not_o afterward_o inflict_v any_o vindicative_a punishment_n this_o be_v the_o argument_n of_o a_o learned_a writer_n deus_fw-la debita_fw-la nostra_fw-la non_fw-la minus_fw-la gratuito_fw-la et_fw-la plene_fw-la nobis_fw-la dimittit_fw-la quam_fw-la docuit_fw-la nos_fw-la debitoribus_fw-la nostris_fw-la dimittere_fw-la god_n say_v he_o do_v no_o less_o free_o and_o sully_v forgive_v we_o our_o debt_n than_o he_o will_v have_v we_o to_o forgive_v our_o debtor_n i_o may_v multiply_v sentence_n of_o writer_n who_o with_o one_o consent_n do_v underwrite_v to_o this_o truth_n polanus_fw-la say_v that_o they_o who_o be_v temporal_o punish_v for_o sin_n here_o be_v to_o be_v punish_v to_o eternity_n qui_fw-la temporaliter_fw-la puniuntur_fw-la in_o aeternum_fw-la puniendi_fw-la sunt_fw-la and_o that_o chastisement_n be_v not_o so_o much_o for_o the_o purge_n of_o sin_n past_a as_o to_o teach_v to_o avoid_v sin_n for_o the_o future_a non_fw-la adhibetur_fw-la pro_fw-la purgandis_fw-la praeteritis_fw-la peccatis_fw-la sed_fw-la pro_fw-la futuris_fw-la vitandis_fw-la pol._n synt_n l._n 6._o c._n 4._o willet_n have_v many_o speech_n to_o this_o purpose_n in_o his_o synopsis_n davenant_n write_v on_o this_o point_n against_o the_o papist_n say_v what_o be_v it_o to_o remit_v the_o sin_n or_o the_o fault_n than_o not_o to_o punish_v a_o man_n any_o more_o for_o it_o quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la peccatum_fw-la sive_fw-la culpam_fw-la remittere_fw-la quam_fw-la illud_fw-la ad_fw-la poenam_fw-la hand_n amplius_fw-la imputare_fw-la but_o i_o study_v brevity_n know_v how_o distasteful_a long_a controversy_n be_v to_o the_o palate_n of_o man_n of_o these_o time_n and_o therefore_o in_o few_o word_n to_o put_v a_o period_n to_o what_o i_o intend_v to_o speak_v concern_v the_o first_o branch_n of_o this_o article_n i_o conceive_v that_o man_n may_v be_v consider_v two_o manner_n of_o way_n first_o as_o he_o be_v in_o the_o first_o adam_n and_o so_o all_o affliction_n be_v proper_o punishment_n and_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n unto_o he_o 2_o dly_z in_o the_o second_o adam_n and_o thus_o the_o nature_n of_o affliction_n and_o chastisement_n for_o sin_n be_v change_v unto_o he_o the_o sting_n be_v take_v out_o of_o death_n and_o every_o affliction_n affliction_n be_v benediction_n to_o he_o afflictiones_fw-la benedictiones_fw-la bern._n not_o curse_n but_o blessing_n unto_o he_o and_o therefore_o 2_o lie_n god_n will_v chasten_v his_o justify_v people_n in_o his_o fatherly_a love_n to_o they_o and_o displeasure_n against_o sin_n that_o they_o may_v be_v partaker_n of_o his_o holiness_n heb._n 12.10_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n as_o they_o be_v partaker_n of_o christ_n righteousness_n in_o their_o justification_n which_o make_v true_a saint_n not_o only_o to_o bear_v affliction_n patient_o but_o to_o glory_n in_o tribulation_n rom._n 5.3_o and_o though_o in_o a_o sense_n they_o be_v afflict_v neither_o for_o sin_n that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o satisfy_v god_n justice_n which_o be_v already_o satisfy_v by_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o from_o sin_n as_o some_o speak_v for_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o sin_n yet_o god_n do_v afflict_v we_o that_o in_o the_o affliction_n he_o may_v pour_v forth_o his_o spirit_n upon_o we_o for_o the_o remove_n of_o sin_n out_o of_o our_o spirit_n which_o do_v grieve_v his_o spirit_n and_o out_o of_o our_o conversation_n which_o do_v dishonour_v his_o name_n and_o for_o the_o prevent_n of_o sin_n for_o the_o future_a the_o prodigal_n will_v take_v heed_n how_o he_o do_v run_v from_o his_o father_n house_n when_o he_o have_v be_v among_o the_o swine_n and_o the_o soul_n belove_v of_o christ_n when_o she_o be_v forsake_v of_o all_o lover_n and_o in_o misery_n will_v resolve_v to_o return_v unto_o her_o first_o love_n and_o say_v for_o than_o be_v it_o better_a with_o i_o than_o now_o hos_fw-la 2.7_o and_o thus_o much_o brief_o by_o way_n of_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o branch_n of_o this_o article_n the_o second_o branch_n of_o this_o article_n be_v this_o that_o the_o land_n be_v not_o punish_v for_o the_o sin_n of_o god_n people_n what_o have_v be_v speak_v concern_v the_o precedent_a branch_n of_o this_o article_n for_o the_o clear_n of_o this_o as_o no_o legal_a punishment_n proper_o so_o call_v can_v be_v inflict_v upon_o the_o person_n of_o a_o believer_n for_o his_o sin_n so_o no_o punishment_n can_v be_v inflict_v upon_o the_o land_n in_o which_o he_o live_v for_o his_o sin_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o god_n who_o punish_v the_o unjustified_a person_n of_o a_o land_n in_o his_o wrath_n for_o their_o rebellion_n and_o transgression_n may_v chastise_v some_o of_o his_o people_n by_o a_o national_a calamity_n and_o affliction_n for_o their_o humiliation_n and_o reformation_n but_o though_o in_o a_o national_a visitation_n the_o same_o affliction_n if_o it_o be_v material_o consider_v may_v be_v lay_v upon_o a_o believer_n which_o be_v lay_v upon_o unbeliever_n yet_o the_o affliction_n which_o be_v lay_v upon_o a_o saint_n be_v formal_o distinguish_v from_o that_o which_o be_v inflict_v upon_o unjustified_a person_n the_o one_o flow_v from_o the_o love_n of_o a_o father_n the_o other_o from_o the_o wrath_n of_o a_o enemy_n the_o least_o of_o these_o be_v proper_o material_o &_o formal_o a_o legal_a punishment_n the_o other_o material_o a_o judgement_n or_o punishment_n but_o formal_o a_o fatherly_a chastisement_n and_o a_o pledge_n of_o god_n love_n to_o a_o saint_n sect._n 5._o there_o be_v yet_o one_o article_n more_o which_o the_o subscriber_n have_v take_v out_o of_o mr._n gataker_n page_n 16._o that_o if_o a_o man_n by_o the_o spirit_n know_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o state_n of_o grace_n though_o he_o be_v drink_v or_o commit_v murder_n god_n see_v no_o sin_n in_o he_o if_o i_o shall_v but_o name_v the_o man_n who_o bring_v in_o this_o article_n against_o i_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o acquit_v i_o from_o the_o charge_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o those_o who_o know_v he_o but_o i_o be_o resolve_v that_o the_o world_n shall_v see_v that_o i_o study_v not_o revenge_n but_o the_o clear_n and_o vindication_n of_o truth_n in_o my_o answer_n when_o one_o in_o the_o star-chamber_n demand_v of_o i_o whether_o a_o article_n something_o like_a unto_o this_o be_v my_o tenet_n and_o whether_o i_o have_v deliver_v it_o in_o such_o word_n i_o do_v reply_v that_o i_o may_v affime_v of_o it_o what_o marshal_n do_v of_o his_o poem_n that_o it_o be_v he_o as_o make_v compose_a and_o deliver_v by_o he_o but_o it_o cease_v to_o be_v his_o and_o become_v the_o repeater_n when_o it_o be_v evil_o repeat_v by_o another_o sed_fw-la male_a dum_fw-la recitas_fw-la incipit_fw-la esse_fw-la tuum_fw-la so_o the_o truth_n contain_v in_o this_o article_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n see_v no_o sin_n in_o his_o justify_v child_n in_o the_o sense_n in_o which_o i_o deliver_v it_o it_o be_v my_o tenet_n or_o rather_o god_n truth_n but_o while_o it_o be_v repeat_v with_o some_o word_n of_o the_o accuser_n to_o bring_v a_o odium_fw-la upon_o the_o truth_n and_o that_o be_v not_o mention_v which_o be_v large_o lay_v down_o in_o my_o discourse_n to_o give_v light_n unto_o it_o i_o do_v affirm_v that_o
i_o that_o i_o shall_v deliver_v in_o a_o sermon_n these_o word_n let_v believer_n sin_n as_o fast_o as_o they_o will_v there_o be_v a_o fountain_n open_a for_o they_o to_o wash_v in_o but_o it_o be_v demand_v by_o some_o whether_o i_o do_v deliver_v it_o by_o way_n of_o exhortation_n the_o accuser_n be_v so_o ingenious_a to_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v not_o deliver_v as_o a_o exhortation_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o your_o brethren_n of_o the_o new_a province_n have_v have_v so_o much_o grace_n to_o leave_v it_o out_o in_o their_o charge_n though_o it_o be_v in_o the_o same_o page_n in_o which_o they_o have_v take_v out_o the_o other_o article_n and_o it_o will_v be_v for_o your_o credit_n more_o than_o for_o i_o to_o leave_v it_o out_o in_o your_o next_o edition_n you_o may_v as_o well_o take_v out_o that_o part_n of_o a_o verse_n in_o revel_n 22.11_o he_o that_o be_v unjust_a let_v he_o be_v unjust_a still_o and_o he_o that_o be_v filthy_a let_v he_o be_v filthy_a still_o and_o conclude_v that_o god_n in_o scripture_n exhort_v man_n to_o be_v unjust_a and_o filthy_a as_o to_o draw_v out_o scrap_n and_o fragment_n out_o of_o my_o discourse_n to_o persuade_v the_o world_n that_o i_o in_o my_o preach_n exhort_v people_n to_o commit_v sin_n which_o i_o do_v desire_n to_o destroy_v in_o myself_o and_o those_o who_o hear_v i_o by_o preach_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n your_o learning_n if_o not_o love_n may_v have_v teach_v you_o to_o have_v put_v a_o more_o favourable_a construction_n upon_o these_o word_n the_o word_n let_v be_v not_o always_o use_v by_o way_n of_o exhortation_n as_o appear_v by_o those_o word_n rev._n 22.11_o but_o sometime_o by_o way_n of_o supposition_n and_o do_v frequent_o signify_v as_o much_o as_o the_o word_n though_o do_v and_o take_v it_o in_o this_o sense_n it_o be_v as_o seasonable_a a_o truth_n as_o i_o can_v in_o desire_n of_o your_o good_a leave_v upon_o your_o spirit_n though_o you_o who_o profess_v yourself_o a_o believer_n have_v sin_v as_o fast_o as_o you_o can_v in_o my_o apprehension_n against_o the_o law_n of_o love_n and_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o fountain_n open_v in_o which_o if_o god_n give_v you_o faith_n you_o may_v wash_v yourself_o from_o these_o sin_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o i_o shall_v comfort_v myself_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o charge_v upon_o i_o but_o the_o same_o have_v be_v charge_v upon_o those_o who_o be_v more_o fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n for_o preach_v than_o i_o be_o they_o be_v charge_v with_o the_o same_o thing_n by_o some_o ignorant_a or_o malicious_a hearer_n as_o appear_v by_o rom._n 3_o 8._o and_o not_o rather_o as_o we_o be_v slanderous_o report_v and_o as_o some_o affirm_v that_o we_o say_v let_v we_o do_v evil_a that_o good_a may_v come_v who_o damnation_n be_v just_a you_o may_v now_o expect_v that_o before_o i_o put_v a_o period_n to_o my_o answer_n i_o shall_v speak_v something_o to_o your_o reproachful_n &_o rail_a speech_n against_o i_o but_o you_o know_v who_o say_v man_n have_v learned_a to_o reproach_v i_o and_o speak_v evil_a of_o i_o but_o i_o to_o suffer_v reproach_n didicerunt_fw-la illi_fw-la maledicere_fw-la ego_fw-la pati_fw-la and_o i_o shall_v learn_v of_o the_o angel_n to_o say_v this_o to_o all_o my_o defamer_n the_o lord_n rebuke_v you_o zech._n 3.2_o and_o shall_v entreat_v god_n for_o his_o son_n sake_n to_o give_v grace_n and_o patience_n to_o his_o afflict_a and_o oppress_a servant_n amen_n man_n legal_a righteousness_n be_v no_o cause_n or_o part_n of_o his_o justification_n ephes._n 2.8_o 9_o for_o by_o grace_n be_v you_o save_v through_o faith_n and_o that_o not_o of_o yourselves_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n not_o of_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v there_o be_v two_o thing_n which_o man_n ought_v chief_o to_o know_v their_o misery_n by_o sin_n and_o their_o happiness_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o by_o the_o wicked_a unfaithfulnesse_n of_o our_o memory_n we_o be_v more_o apt_a to_o forget_v these_o two_o thing_n then_o to_o forget_v any_o other_o point_n whatsoever_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d know_v thyself_o be_v a_o lesson_n as_o difficult_a as_o it_o be_v old_a and_o common_a how_o hard_o a_o matter_n be_v it_o for_o a_o man_n to_o remember_v himself_o as_o to_o know_v what_o he_o be_v in_o himself_o the_o king_n of_o macedonia_n think_v it_o needful_a that_o his_o page_n shall_v every_o morning_n put_v he_o in_o remembrance_n that_o he_o be_v a_o mortal_a man_n and_o every_o spiritual_a man_n do_v find_v it_o necessary_a that_o the_o spirit_n daily_o shall_v become_v his_o remembrancer_n to_o put_v he_o in_o mind_n that_o he_o be_v a_o sinful_a man_n so_o likewise_o it_o be_v a_o hard_a matter_n without_o the_o power_n &_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n always_o to_o know_v the_o rich_a full_a and_o free_a grace_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v hold_v forth_o in_o the_o gospel_n to_o poor_a sinner_n the_o last_o of_o these_o as_o it_o be_v the_o most_o sweet_a and_o excellent_a lesson_n so_o with_o the_o great_a difficulty_n it_o be_v retain_v in_o our_o memory_n this_o be_v a_o doctrine_n which_o if_o it_o be_v preach_v unto_o we_o every_o day_n we_o shall_v forget_v it_o every_o day_n the_o daily_a teach_n and_o hourly_a learning_n of_o it_o can_v whole_o free_v we_o from_o the_o ignorance_n of_o this_o truth_n but_o as_o far_o as_o we_o be_v carnal_a and_o fleshly_a we_o be_v stranger_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o it_o so_o that_o he_o that_o think_v he_o perfect_o know_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o i_o dare_v profess_v to_o that_o man_n that_o he_o know_v nothing_o of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n as_o he_o ought_v to_o know_v as_o long_o as_o we_o live_v upon_o the_o earth_n we_o may_v be_v learner_n of_o this_o doctrine_n paul_n after_o he_o have_v be_v a_o scholar_n and_o a_o age_a teacher_n in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n many_o year_n do_v then_o profess_v that_o he_o endeavour_v to_o forget_v his_o own_o work_n and_o legal_a righteousness_n in_o reference_n to_o his_o justification_n and_o press_v forward_o to_o know_v more_o of_o the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n labour_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o righteousness_n which_o be_v of_o god_n by_o faith_n phil._n 3.10_o therefore_o though_o i_o have_v former_o speak_v of_o the_o chief_a point_n that_o lie_v in_o these_o verse_n yet_o i_o know_v it_o be_v needful_a and_o necessary_a for_o i_o to_o speak_v of_o it_o again_o that_o you_o that_o have_v hear_v it_o open_v may_v hear_v more_o of_o it_o as_o well_o as_o for_o those_o who_o have_v not_o hear_v the_o point_n so_o clear_o &_o full_o unfold_v unto_o they_o to_o who_o god_n may_v make_v my_o discourse_n beneficial_a if_o he_o accompany_v i_o with_o his_o presence_n wherefore_o i_o have_v pitch_v upon_o this_o subject_n at_o this_o present_a in_o which_o the_o sum_n of_o all_o divinity_n be_v comprise_v for_o faith_n and_o love_n be_v the_o sum_n of_o all_o that_o we_o preach_v faith_n towards_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o love_n towards_o god_n and_o all_o those_o that_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o in_o the_o same_o spirit_n with_o ourselves_o and_o the_o apostle_n lay_v down_o both_o these_o in_o these_o verse_n show_v first_o clear_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n through_o faith_n alone_o without_o work_n and_o then_o show_v that_o though_o we_o be_v justify_v without_o work_n yet_o how_o in_o the_o spirit_n we_o be_v carry_v forth_o to_o perform_v all_o good_a work_n for_o he_o say_v we_o be_v create_v the_o workmanship_n of_o god_n unto_o good_a work_n ver_fw-la 10._o in_o these_o word_n these_o particular_n present_v themselves_o to_o your_o best_a attention_n first_o that_o salvation_n and_o justification_n be_v by_o grace_n that_o be_v by_o the_o free_a favour_n of_o god_n tee_fw-mi be_v save_v by_o grace_n second_o he_o show_v how_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n in_o a_o way_n of_o believe_a not_o work_v you_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n many_o pretend_v that_o they_o look_v on_o grace_n but_o it_o be_v through_o the_o spectacle_n of_o their_o own_o work_n but_o he_o that_o do_v true_o eye_n grace_n he_o look_v on_o grace_n in_o a_o act_n of_o believe_a and_o not_o through_o work_v three_o the_o apostle_n discover_v the_o nature_n of_o true_a faith_n which_o be_v the_o unfeigned_a faith_n of_o the_o elect._n first_o negative_o he_o inform_v we_o that_o this_o faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o there_o be_v not_o a_o fountain_n in_o ourselves_o from_o whence_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n spring_v it_o flow_v not_o
from_o the_o natural_a carnal_a or_o rational_a principle_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n but_o from_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n second_o affirmative_o he_o inform_v we_o concern_v the_o nature_n and_o original_n of_o it_o it_o proceed_v from_o god_n and_o be_v bestow_v upon_o the_o creature_n as_o a_o free_a gift_n it_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n four_o he_o show_v that_o as_o it_o be_v by_o grace_n so_o it_o be_v not_o by_o work_n as_o it_o be_v by_o believe_v so_o it_o be_v not_o by_o work_v not_o of_o work_n five_o he_o give_v the_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v not_o by_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v if_o a_o man_n can_v say_v that_o god_n have_v justify_v and_o save_v he_o for_o his_o endeavour_n labour_n pain_n or_o good_a work_n than_o a_o man_n may_v boast_v when_o he_o meet_v with_o one_o that_o be_v without_o christ_n he_o may_v say_v i_o have_v do_v this_o good_a work_n and_o the_o other_o good_a work_n for_o christ_n i_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o thou_o shall_v be_v damn_v but_o the_o true_a child_n of_o god_n if_o he_o meet_v with_o a_o reprobate_n he_o see_v no_o cause_n to_o boast_v it_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v save_v when_o the_o other_o be_v damn_v not_o by_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v it_o be_v the_o design_n and_o intention_n of_o god_n in_o justify_v a_o sinner_n by_o grace_n without_o work_n to_o keep_v man_n from_o pride_n and_o boast_n man_n do_v fall_v from_o happiness_n by_o pride_n there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o attain_v happiness_n but_o by_o humility_n and_o faith_n the_o true_a way_n to_o humility_n be_v by_o believe_v for_o believe_v empty_v the_o creature_n of_o all_o work_n and_o righteousness_n and_o show_v that_o he_o be_v nothing_o in_o himself_o and_o that_o all_o his_o treasure_n glory_n happiness_n riches_n and_o perfection_n lie_v treasure_v and_o lay_v up_o in_o another_o fides_n hominem_fw-la vacuum_fw-la deo_fw-la adducit_fw-la ut_fw-la christi_fw-la bonis_fw-la impleatur_fw-la faith_n bring_v a_o man_n in_o a_o poor_a and_o beggarly_a condition_n to_o christ_n that_o he_o may_v be_v enrich_v by_o christ_n last_o the_o apostle_n declare_v that_o though_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n yet_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v unfruitful_a in_o bring_v forth_o good_a work_n we_o be_v the_o workmanship_n of_o god_n by_o a_o new_a creation_n and_o the_o end_n of_o our_o creation_n in_o christ_n be_v this_o that_o be_v in_o he_o we_o may_v be_v active_a to_o love_v and_o good_a work_n first_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v negative_o that_o there_o be_v no_o justification_n by_o work_n and_o then_o show_v how_o it_o be_v by_o grace_n and_o then_o how_o it_o be_v in_o a_o way_n of_o believe_a and_o so_o come_v to_o distinguish_v true_a faith_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o spirit_n from_o the_o false_a faith_n of_o hypocrite_n and_o libertine_n which_o flow_v only_o from_o a_o principle_n of_o humane_a wisdom_n and_o not_o from_o the_o powerful_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n at_o this_o present_a i_o shall_v observe_v this_o method_n first_o i_o will_v show_v that_o we_o be_v not_o save_v by_o work_n i_o mean_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n then_o i_o shall_v show_v that_o we_o be_v not_o save_v and_o justify_v by_o work_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n or_o do_v under_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n three_o i_o shall_v show_v that_o we_o be_v not_o save_v by_o work_n in_o which_o we_o yield_v obedience_n to_o any_o gospel_n ordinance_n though_o they_o be_v ordinance_n appoint_v by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o to_o be_v practise_v by_o the_o saint_n i_o take_v in_o this_o because_o i_o have_v find_v in_o my_o own_o spirit_n and_o in_o many_o that_o i_o have_v deal_v with_o a_o secret_a and_o subtle_a kind_n of_o popery_n by_o which_o we_o be_v apt_a to_o attribute_v something_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o ordinance_n in_o reference_n to_o our_o justification_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o people_n be_v so_o ready_a to_o run_v into_o every_o new_a way_n of_o worship_n which_o be_v bring_v to_o light_n think_v that_o unless_o they_o find_v out_o the_o right_a discipline_n and_o government_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o right_a baptism_n and_o ordinance_n they_o be_v not_o true_a saint_n nor_o sufficient_o justify_v therefore_o i_o shall_v take_v in_o this_o too_o to_o show_v that_o as_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o more_o inward_a and_o spiritual_a work_n so_o neither_o be_v we_o justify_v by_o any_o outward_a observation_n of_o ordinance_n or_o submit_v to_o any_o command_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o only_o by_o our_o obedience_n to_o the_o first_o and_o principal_a command_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v justification_n by_o grace_n through_o christ_n without_o work_n for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o head_n i_o shall_v brief_o show_v how_o it_o be_v not_o by_o work_n pass_v by_o many_o thing_n that_o i_o have_v former_o speak_v of_o and_o i_o shall_v only_o lay_v down_o four_o or_o five_o consideration_n for_o the_o confirm_v of_o this_o that_o we_o be_v save_v and_o justify_v before_o god_n and_o in_o the_o court_n of_o our_o own_o conscience_n without_o any_o work_n whatsoever_o the_o first_o consideration_n may_v be_v this_o we_o can_v be_v justify_v by_o work_n or_o by_o the_o law_n because_o there_o be_v never_o any_o man_n have_v a_o legal_a righteousness_n but_o the_o man_n christ_n jesus_n this_o be_v paul_n undeniable_a conclusion_n lay_v down_o in_o rom._n 3.23_o all_o have_v sin_v and_o come_v short_a of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n the_o devout_a jew_n as_o well_o as_o the_o profane_a gentile_a be_v bring_v in_o before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o god_n as_o a_o guilty_a finner_n come_v short_a of_o such_o a_o glorious_a righteousness_n which_o the_o law_n do_v require_v of_o he_o that_o he_o may_v be_v justify_v under_o it_o the_o gentile_n never_o walk_v according_a to_o the_o write_a law_n of_o nature_n which_o be_v write_v in_o his_o heart_n nor_o the_o jew_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o his_o maker_n write_v in_o table_n of_o stone_n all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n may_v be_v reduce_v to_o two_o head_n the_o first_o be_v those_o work_n that_o we_o do_v in_o obedience_n to_o god_n to_o show_v our_o love_n to_o he_o second_o the_o work_n that_o we_o do_v to_o show_v our_o love_n to_o our_o neighbour_n now_o if_o we_o take_v work_n in_o either_o of_o these_o two_o respect_n i_o shall_v show_v that_o all_o the_o man_n and_o woman_n in_o the_o world_n come_v short_a of_o such_o a_o legal_a righteousness_n and_o perfection_n that_o the_o holy_a just_a and_o pure_a law_n of_o god_n require_v it_o will_v be_v clear_a that_o no_o man_n ever_o love_v god_n as_o he_o ought_v god_n do_v command_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v love_v he_o with_o all_o our_o heart_n and_o with_o all_o our_o strength_n with_o the_o whole_a stream_n of_o our_o affection_n but_o what_o man_n do_v ever_o love_n god_n in_o that_o manner_n suppose_v a_o wife_n shall_v entertain_v many_o thousand_o lover_n beside_o her_o husband_n can_v any_o say_v that_o that_o wife_n love_v her_o husband_n so_o many_o fin_n as_o we_o have_v so_o many_o lover_n we_o have_v so_o the_o scripture_n call_v they_o jer._n 3.1_o thou_o hastplay_v the_o harlot_n with_o many_o lover_n that_o be_v thou_o have_v follow_v many_o sin_n and_o lust_n base_a and_o vile_a corruption_n now_o it_o be_v thus_o with_o all_o the_o man_n in_o the_o world_n we_o have_v all_o go_v a_o whore_v from_o our_o god_n so_o that_o though_o all_o man_n yea_o even_a turk_n and_o heathen_n pretend_v to_o love_n god_n the_o great_a god_n that_o make_v they_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o ever_o love_v god_n as_o he_o ought_v that_o man_n that_o think_v that_o he_o ever_o love_v god_n as_o he_o ought_v and_o as_o the_o law_n require_v he_o be_v very_o blind_a and_o not_o enlighten_v to_o this_o day_n to_o see_v the_o purity_n and_o spirituality_n of_o the_o righteous_a law_n of_o the_o just_a and_o high_a god_n suppose_v a_o subject_a shall_v always_o contrive_v rebellion_n and_o conspire_v against_o the_o person_n of_o his_o king_n as_o desirous_a to_o take_v away_o his_o life_n and_o to_o pull_v the_o crown_n from_o his_o head_n will_v any_o say_v that_o this_o subject_n love_v the_o king_n thus_o it_o be_v with_o all_o man_n we_o be_v all_o traitor_n and_o rebel_n against_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n if_o we_o have_v strength_n we_o will_v take_v the_o crown_n from_o the_o head_n of_o god_n and_o set_v it_o upon_o the_o head_n of_o the_o
holy_a ghost_n since_o the_o scripture_n require_v nothing_o to_o make_v a_o man_n a_o heir_n with_o christ_n but_o faith_n what_o abominable_a popery_n be_v it_o to_o say_v that_o a_o man_n can_v be_v a_o saint_n if_o he_o do_v not_o submit_v to_o outward_a ordinance_n i_o can_v but_o commend_v what_o i_o find_v in_o luther_n who_o be_v zealous_o carry_v forth_o against_o some_o in_o his_o time_n that_o make_v a_o rent_n from_o he_o in_o a_o legal_a way_n because_o they_o differ_v from_o he_o about_o external_a thing_n and_o ordinance_n which_o be_v no_o just_a ground_n why_o saint_n shall_v divide_v themselves_o from_o one_o another_o who_o say_v that_o they_o have_v bring_v in_o another_o kind_n of_o popery_n and_o more_o dangerous_a than_o that_o which_o he_o bid_v overthrow_v by_o his_o preach_n for_o as_o for_o gross_a popery_n say_v he_o man_n eye_n begin_v to_o be_v enlighten_v to_o see_v the_o absurdity_n of_o it_o but_o these_o man_n come_v in_o a_o subtle_a way_n and_o pretend_v a_o necessity_n of_o submit_v to_o form_n institution_n and_o ordinance_n do_v pervert_v the_o pure_a and_o simple_a gospel_n of_o christ_n labour_v to_o persuade_v man_n that_o if_o they_o do_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o will_v not_o acknowledge_v and_o confess_v they_o before_o his_o father_n and_o that_o unless_o they_o be_v under_o his_o government_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v under_o he_o for_o justification_n therefore_o we_o be_v to_o be_v right_o inform_v concern_v these_o thing_n and_o if_o we_o do_v submit_v to_o outward_a ordinance_n we_o shall_v not_o do_v it_o from_o legal_a principle_n for_o it_o be_v better_a not_o to_o practice_v they_o then_o to_o practice_v they_o from_o these_o principle_n to_o the_o ruine_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o they_o that_o draw_v disciple_n after_o they_o by_o such_o rigid_a and_o gospel_n destroy_v principle_n will_v find_v to_o their_o shame_n that_o those_o that_o they_o have_v bring_v in_o by_o these_o principle_n will_v fall_v away_o from_o they_o to_o their_o shame_n and_o infamy_n for_o god_n be_v dishonour_v christ_n be_v rob_v of_o his_o grace_n and_o the_o free_a spirit_n lose_v his_o glory_n suffer_v i_o now_o to_o make_v a_o little_a use_n and_o so_o i_o shall_v commend_v you_o and_o what_o have_v be_v deliver_v to_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n you_o have_v see_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o believe_v the_o gospel_n without_o any_o work_n go_v before_o justification_n or_o any_o submission_n to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o may_v follow_v it_o this_o do_v bring_v four_o sort_n of_o people_n under_o a_o just_a reproof_n first_o such_o as_o be_v gross_o popish_a maintain_v justification_n by_o their_o own_o work_n and_o righteousness_n or_o affirm_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o faith_n only_o but_o by_o faith_n and_o work_v together_o these_o deny_v justification_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n through_o faith_n and_o set_v up_o a_o justification_n by_o inherent_a righteousness_n in_o themselves_o hold_v that_o we_o be_v then_o justify_v from_o sin_n when_o it_o be_v remove_v out_o of_o our_o sight_n sense_n feeling_n life_n spirit_n and_o conversation_n the_o strong_a argument_n which_o they_o bring_v for_o the_o confirm_v of_o their_o assertion_n and_o in_o which_o they_o do_v most_o triumph_n as_o though_o they_o have_v obtain_v a_o victory_n over_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n grace_n be_v in_o the_o 2_o jam._n 24._o you_o see_v then_o bow_v that_o by_o work_n a_o man_n be_v justify_v and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o do_v not_o james_n say_v they_o lay_v down_o our_o assertion_n in_o so_o many_o word_n join_v faith_n and_o good_a work_n as_o concause_n of_o justification_n some_o to_o escape_v the_o edge_n of_o this_o argument_n have_v deny_v this_o epistle_n to_o be_v canonical_a like_v he_o who_o be_v unable_a to_o untie_v the_o gordian_a knot_n do_v cut_v it_o in_o piece_n thus_o lucius_n osiander_n propose_v this_o objection_n of_o his_o antagonist_n do_v think_v that_o he_o have_v for_o ever_o cut_v it_o to_o piece_n by_o their_o answer_n but_o second_o other_o yea_o most_o of_o those_o who_o we_o call_v protestant_n writer_n for_o the_o reconcile_n of_o james_n to_o paul_n and_o his_o fellow-apostle_n with_o one_o consent_n give_v in_o this_o answer_n to_o this_o objection_n distinguish_v of_o a_o twofold_a justification_n first_o a_o justification_n before_o god_n second_o a_o justification_n before_o man_n paul_n as_o they_o apprehend_v do_v speak_v of_o the_o former_a of_o these_o james_z of_o the_o latter_a suppose_v this_o to_o be_v the_o genuine_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o james_n that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o work_n that_o be_v declarative_o before_o man_n but_o with_o respect_n and_o due_a reverence_n to_o the_o piety_n and_o learning_n of_o these_o man_n who_o give_v in_o this_o answer_n give_v i_o leave_v be_v not_o swear_v in_o verba_fw-la magistri_fw-la or_o oblige_v to_o justify_v what_o any_o man_n or_o many_o man_n though_o godly_a and_o learned_a have_v apprehend_v to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o a_o place_n to_o show_v my_o reason_n why_o i_o dissent_v from_o they_o and_o second_o to_o give_v in_o my_o own_o answer_n to_o the_o place_n first_o i_o apprehend_v that_o james_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o a_o justification_n before_o man_n because_o his_o proof_n be_v from_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n when_o he_o offer_v up_o his_o son_n isaac_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o precede_a word_n which_o action_n of_o abraham_n will_v not_o have_v justify_v he_o before_o man_n they_o will_v have_v look_v upon_o he_o rather_o as_o a_o cruel_a malefactor_n than_o a_o saint_n in_o offer_v up_o his_o only_a son_n second_o this_o business_n be_v so_o transact_v between_o god_n and_o abraham_n that_o it_o be_v not_o visible_a to_o man_n that_o they_o shall_v justify_v he_o for_o it_o when_o he_o go_v to_o perform_v this_o act_n of_o obedience_n to_o his_o god_n he_o leave_v his_o servant_n behind_o he_o and_o carry_v no_o man_n with_o he_o but_o his_o son_n who_o be_v to_o be_v sacrifice_v three_o if_o we_o view_v the_o place_n ger._n 22.11_o 12._o out_o of_o which_o james_n do_v prove_v his_o argument_n it_o will_v be_v evident_a that_o it_o prove_v not_o a_o justification_n towards_o man_n but_o towards_o god_n and_o the_o angel_n say_v lay_v not_o thy_o hand_n upon_o the_o lad_n for_o now_o i_o know_v that_o thou_o fear_v god_n see_v thou_o have_v not_o withhold_v thy_o son_n thy_o only_a son_n from_o i_o this_o angel_n be_v christ_n as_o it_o do_v appear_v by_o his_o call_n of_o himself_o god_n and_o he_o be_v justify_v by_o he_o as_o a_o man_n that_o fear_v he_o and_o in_o the_o 16_o 17_o and_o 18._o verse_n by_o myself_o have_v i_o swear_v say_v the_o lord_n because_o thou_o have_v do_v this_o thing_n that_o in_o blessing_n i_o will_v bless_v thou_o and_o in_o thy_o seed_n shall_v all_o the_o nation_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v bless_v it_o be_v clear_a by_o this_o that_o the_o justisication_n speak_v of_o be_v not_o a_o justification_n before_o man_n but_o before_o god_n last_o i_o shall_v therefore_o give_v in_o what_o i_o do_v conceive_v to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o these_o word_n james_n do_v not_o speak_v of_o justification_n as_o it_o be_v take_v proper_o and_o use_v by_o paul_n but_o do_v speak_v of_o justification_n as_o it_o be_v take_v improper_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o it_o as_o a_o act_n by_o which_o we_o be_v reconcile_v and_o our_o iniquity_n pardon_v but_o he_o speak_v of_o it_o as_o a_o act_n by_o which_o god_n do_v approve_v a_o man_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o his_o work_n which_o he_o do_v after_o his_o justification_n abraham_n be_v a_o justify_v man_n by_o faith_n before_o isaac_n be_v bear_v now_o god_n do_v bear_v witness_n to_o the_o work_n and_o fruit_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o do_v justify_v he_o by_o his_o work_n in_o this_o sense_n that_o be_v he_o do_v approve_v he_o to_o be_v a_o man_n that_o fear_v and_o love_v he_o and_o this_o be_v the_o answer_n which_o be_v give_v by_o the_o learned_a melancthon_n non_fw-la intelligatur_fw-la verbum_fw-la justificari_fw-la pro_fw-la reconciliari_fw-la sed_fw-la ut_fw-la alius_fw-la saepe_fw-la dicitur_fw-la pro_fw-la approbari_fw-la justificatur_fw-la homo_fw-la ex_fw-la operibus_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la habens_fw-la justitiam_fw-la operum_fw-la approbatur_fw-la placet_fw-la deo_fw-la the_o word_n justification_n be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v for_o reconciliation_n but_o approbation_n man_n be_v justify_v by_o his_o work_n that_o be_v have_v a_o righteousness_n of_o work_n or_o sanctification_n god_n do_v approve_v he_o his_o work_n do_v
thou_o for_o other_o foundation_n can_v no_o man_n lay_v then_o that_o which_o be_v lay_v which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n 1_o cor._n 3._o though_o a_o spiritual_a man_n can_v make_v a_o good_a use_n of_o mark_n and_o sign_n as_o of_o love_n to_o god_n and_o saint_n when_o he_o see_v they_o in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n as_o fruit_n proceed_v from_o faith_n as_o the_o root_n yet_o by_o draw_v a_o conclusion_n from_o the_o sight_n of_o such_o thing_n which_o we_o apprehend_v to_o be_v in_o ourselves_o of_o our_o happiness_n and_o good_a estate_n before_o god_n we_o shall_v not_o so_o true_o comfort_v as_o certain_o deceive_v ourselves_o four_o this_o be_v for_o the_o reprehension_n of_o blind_a &_o ignorant_a formalist_n who_o place_n religion_n rather_o in_o conformity_n to_o outward_a form_n of_o government_n and_o submission_n to_o external_a ordinance_n then_o in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v operative_a by_o love_n justification_n do_v not_o lie_v in_o our_o obedience_n to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o in_o jesus_n christ_n we_o be_v not_o make_v saint_n by_o be_v make_v member_n of_o any_o church_n or_o congregation_n but_o by_o faith_n in_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n woe_n to_o he_o that_o make_v his_o obedience_n and_o submission_n to_o any_o ordinance_n the_o ground_n of_o his_o comfort_n as_o too_o many_o zealous_a formalist_n do_v who_o run_v from_o congregation_n to_o congregation_n from_o one_o ordinance_n to_o another_o to_o get_v solid_a comfort_n to_o their_o soul_n apprehend_v that_o they_o be_v undo_v creature_n and_o can_v be_v true_a saint_n unless_o they_o be_v under_o the_o true_a practice_n of_o all_o ordinance_n whereas_o it_o be_v a_o plain_a truth_n reveal_v in_o the_o gospel_n of_o truth_n that_o neither_o submit_v to_o a_o ordinance_n can_v make_v a_o true_a saint_n nor_o the_o want_n of_o ordinance_n un-saint_n any_o man_n that_o be_v make_v one_o with_o christ_n in_o believe_v he_o be_v not_o a_o jew_n which_o be_v one_o outward_o neither_o be_v that_o circumcision_n which_o be_v outward_a in_o the_o flesh_n but_o he_o be_v a_o jew_n which_o be_v one_o inward_o and_o circumcision_n be_v that_o of_o the_o heart_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o not_o in_o the_o letter_n who_o praise_n be_v not_o of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n rom._n 2.28_o 29._o so_o he_o be_v a_o true_a saint_n who_o be_v not_o a_o visible_a member_n of_o a_o congregation_n but_o he_o who_o life_n of_o faith_n be_v hide_v in_o jesus_n christ_n he_o be_v baptize_v not_o who_o body_n be_v wash_v with_o water_n but_o who_o soul_n be_v wash_v in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 1_o pet._n 3.21_o he_o be_v a_o good_a communicant_a and_o break_v bread_n who_o do_v not_o break_v bread_n outward_o but_o by_o faith_n do_v inward_o feed_v upon_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n of_o the_o law_n do_v before_o or_o after_o justification_n nor_o by_o yield_a obedience_n to_o any_o command_n concern_v outward_a ordinance_n but_o by_o our_o submit_v in_o our_o judgement_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o jesus_n christ_n for_o justification_n without_o these_o i_o will_v not_o here_o be_v mistake_v as_o though_o i_o do_v speak_v against_o any_o saint_n or_o any_o who_o be_v spiritual_a and_o faithful_a in_o the_o observation_n of_o any_o external_a ordinance_n but_o against_o zealous_a formalist_n who_o do_v make_v saintship_n and_o fellowship_n to_o depend_v upon_o these_o thing_n and_o be_v not_o spiritual_o acquaint_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n grace_n but_o be_v perverter_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o next_o place_n here_o lie_v consolation_n for_o all_o that_o hear_v i_o this_o day_n in_o that_o which_o i_o have_v deliver_v if_o god_n shall_v give_v unto_o they_o believe_v heart_n have_v thou_o never_o do_v any_o good_a work_n have_v thou_o hate_v the_o way_n of_o god_n and_o his_o people_n have_v thou_o never_o look_v after_o the_o discipline_n government_n and_o ordinance_n of_o christ_n yet_o here_o be_v a_o ground_n for_o thou_o to_o come_v in_o unto_o christ_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o grace_n through_o believe_v not_o through_o work_v therefore_o let_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o thou_o be_v without_o work_n yet_o thou_o have_v good_a ground_n to_o take_v comfort_n in_o that_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v believe_v and_o thou_o be_v in_o a_o happy_a condition_n though_o thou_o have_v never_o do_v a_o good_a work_n thou_o be_v not_o to_o come_v to_o jesus_n christ_n as_o a_o righteous_a man_n but_o thou_o be_v to_o come_v unto_o he_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v make_v a_o righteous_a man_n if_o thou_o see_v thyself_o a_o vile_a sinner_n cast_v thyself_o into_o the_o arm_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o father_n by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v make_v the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o he_o 2_o cor._n 5._o promise_n of_o grace_n be_v leave_v by_o god_n upon_o record_n in_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n for_o sinner_n for_o ignorant_a sinner_n isa_n 29.24_o they_o that_o err_v in_o spirit_n shall_v come_v to_o understanding_n for_o sinner_n that_o murmur_v against_o he_o his_o way_n truth_n &_o prophet_n as_o it_o follow_v in_o the_o same_o verse_n they_o that_o murmur_v shall_v learn_v doctrine_n for_o backslide_a sinner_n hosea_n 14.4_o i_o will_v heal_v their_o back_n fliding_n i_o will_v love_v they_o free_o he_o that_o come_v unto_o he_o he_o will_v in_o nowise_o cast_v out_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d here_o be_v two_o negative_n in_o the_o greek_a which_o do_v strengthen_v the_o negation_n john_n 6.37_o by_o which_o speech_n our_o saviour_n do_v assure_v poor_a sinful_a creature_n that_o if_o in_o truth_n they_o come_v unto_o he_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v reject_v by_o he_o or_o eject_v from_o the_o arm_n of_o his_o love_n and_o mercy_n christ_n invitation_n be_v to_o all_o sinner_n all_o that_o will_v may_v lay_v hold_n of_o he_o not_o only_o the_o righteous_a but_o the_o unrighteous_a if_o thou_o can_v not_o love_v god_n thou_o may_v look_v on_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o take_v comfort_n that_o god_n love_v thou_o christ_n come_v not_o to_o call_v the_o righteous_a but_o sinner_n the_o chief_a and_o vile_a of_o sinner_n to_o repentance_n therefore_o come_v as_o a_o sinner_n as_o the_o chief_a of_o sinner_n come_v i_o say_v and_o welcome_a the_o lord_n jesus_n keep_v open-house_n for_o all_o comer_n the_o blind_a the_o lame_a shall_v not_o find_v the_o door_n shut_v upon_o they_o they_o shall_v be_v welcome_a as_o sinner_n that_o can_v be_v entertain_v as_o saint_n it_o be_v report_v of_o rome_n first_o founder_n that_o want_v subject_n he_o send_v forth_o some_o to_o make_v know_v his_o will_n to_o all_o people_n who_o live_v about_o he_o that_o if_o any_o malefactor_n or_o such_o who_o be_v oppress_v in_o the_o place_n where_o they_o live_v do_v come_v in_o unto_o he_o they_o shall_v live_v peaceable_o in_o his_o kingdom_n and_o he_o will_v protect_v they_o against_o any_o that_o shall_v pursue_v they_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v he_o become_v sudden_o the_o king_n of_o a_o numerous_a people_n so_o christ_n do_v send_v forth_o his_o proclamation_n to_o assure_v sinner_n and_o vile_a malefactor_n that_o if_o they_o will_v come_v under_o his_o sceptre_n they_o shall_v live_v peaceable_o under_o his_o government_n and_o that_o he_o will_v safeguard_n they_o from_o all_o their_o enemy_n which_o shall_v pursue_v they_o and_o by_o this_o mean_v his_o dominion_n be_v enlarge_v from_o sea_n to_o sea_n and_o sinner_n do_v rejoice_v in_o the_o king_n of_o zion_n this_o doctrine_n if_o it_o be_v receive_v will_v answer_v all_o the_o objection_n which_o be_v raise_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n against_o their_o happiness_n by_o jesus_n christ_n be_v there_o any_o sad_a comfortless_a soul_n which_o will_v not_o be_v comfort_v if_o this_o truth_n be_v receive_v what_o can_v thou_o object_v against_o thyself_o to_o bereave_v thyself_o of_o peace_n which_o will_v not_o be_v remove_v if_o this_o be_v thorough_o believe_v be_v thou_o a_o sinner_n christ_n offer_v himself_o to_o sinner_n be_v thou_o a_o old_a sinner_n a_o old_a sinner_n be_v but_o a_o sinner_n have_v thou_o be_v a_o pharisee_fw-mi like_o paul_n persecute_v christ_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n a_o persecute_v pharisee_n be_v but_o a_o sinner_n and_o paul_n be_v receive_v to_o mercy_n that_o such_o may_v not_o be_v without_o hope_n of_o mercy_n 1_o tim._n 1.16_o be_v thou_o a_o hypocrite_n a_o hypocrite_n may_v come_v as_o a_o sinner_n to_o christ_n bring_v what_o objection_n thou_o can_v and_o a_o persuasion_n concern_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n grace_n shall_v answer_v it_o and_o if_o thou_o do_v believe_v thou_o have_v as_o good_a
in_o christ_n and_o so_o the_o apostle_n say_v tit._n 3.5_o not_o by_o work_n of_o righteousness_n which_o we_o have_v do_v but_o according_a to_o his_o mercy_n he_o save_v we_o that_o be_v according_a to_o his_o eternal_a mercy_n and_o grace_n he_o show_v favour_n and_o compassion_n to_o we_o and_o pardon_v our_o sin_n and_o the_o expression_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v worth_a observe_n epes_n 1.4_o where_o speak_v of_o the_o eternal_a grace_n of_o god_n he_o say_v that_o god_n place_v his_o grace_n upon_o we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n before_o he_o in_o love_n he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o god_n elect_v we_o because_o we_o will_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n but_o he_o elect_v we_o that_o we_o may_v be_v holy_a and_o without_o blame_n before_o he_o in_o love_n good_a work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n but_o the_o consequent_n of_o grace_n nay_o i_o add_v more_o that_o as_o god_n do_v not_o foresee_v our_o good_a work_n so_o not_o our_o faith_n neither_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o grace_n but_o grace_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o faith_n god_n therefore_o enable_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o time_n because_o god_n love_v we_o from_o eternity_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o they_o of_o achaia_n say_v that_o they_o believe_v through_o grace_n and_o apollo_n help_v they_o much_o that_o believe_v through_o grace_n act_v 18.27_o it_o be_v by_o grace_n that_o we_o believe_v it_o be_v not_o by_o faith_n that_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o grace_n thus_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n in_o the_o purpose_n of_o god_n from_o eternity_n in_o the_o eye_n and_o sight_n of_o god_n who_o see_v all_o thing_n absent_a as_o if_o they_o be_v present_a and_o speak_v of_o thing_n before_o they_o be_v do_v as_o if_o they_o be_v do_v in_o the_o next_o place_n grace_n in_o scripture_n be_v consider_v not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v in_o god_n and_o as_o it_o be_v as_o eternal_a as_o god_n himself_o but_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v manifest_v forth_o to_o we_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o so_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n god_n discover_v his_o grace_n to_o we_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n so_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o grace_n 2_o tim._n 1.10_o say_v but_o now_o be_v manifest_v to_o we_o by_o the_o appear_a of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v abolish_v death_n and_o have_v bring_v life_n and_o immortality_n to_o light_v through_o the_o gospel_n he_o speak_v first_o of_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v in_o god_n and_o as_o it_o be_v as_o eternal_a as_o god_n himself_o then_o he_o speak_v of_o eternal_a grace_n manifest_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n of_o his_o dear_a son_n it_o be_v by_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o the_o eternal_a grace_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n be_v make_v know_v to_o we_o and_o this_o grace_n be_v call_v sometime_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o father_n rom._n 1.7_o sometime_o it_o be_v call_v the_o grace_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o sometime_o the_o grace_n of_o they_o both_o because_o jesus_n christ_n be_v god_n one_o god_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n with_o his_o father_n and_o as_o god_n in_o his_o grace_n be_v say_v to_o forgive_v sin_n mica_n 7._o who_o be_v a_o god_n like_o unto_o thou_o that_o pardon_v sin_n say_v the_o prophet_n so_o jesus_n christ_n be_v say_v to_o forgive_v sin_n the_o apostle_n bid_v we_o to_o forgive_v one_o another_o as_o christ_n have_v forgive_v we_o col._n 3.13_o as_o there_o be_v grace_n in_o the_o father_n to_o forgive_v sin_n so_o there_o be_v the_o same_o grace_n in_o the_o son_n the_o apostle_n doubt_v not_o but_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o as_o those_o that_o be_v circumcise_v act._n 15.7_o and_o by_o this_o grace_n we_o be_v save_v god_n discover_v now_o his_o grace_n to_o we_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o the_o eternal_a father_n this_o grace_n in_o scripture_n be_v make_v know_v to_o we_o as_o the_o sole_a cause_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o salvation_n grace_n be_v so_o hold_v forth_o for_o justification_n that_o all_o thing_n beside_o grace_n be_v exclude_v we_o be_v justify_v by_o grace_n exclusive_o all_o other_o thing_n be_v shut_v out_o when_o god_n justifi_v a_o man_n he_o eye_v that_o man_n only_o in_o his_o own_o grace_n and_o when_o god_n justifi_v a_o man_n in_o the_o court_n of_o his_o own_o conscience_n he_o strip_v he_o of_o all_o his_o own_o work_n of_o his_o own_o love_n to_o he_o and_o to_o the_o brethren_n and_o give_v he_o only_o a_o sight_n of_o own_o grace_n this_o grace_n do_v exclude_v all_o merit_n if_o there_o be_v any_o merit_n in_o the_o creature_n man_n can_v not_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n the_o apostle_n clear_v it_o to_o we_o by_o that_o passage_n rom._n 4.4_o to_o he_o that_o work_v the_o reward_n be_v not_o reckon_v of_o grace_n but_o of_o debt_n if_o a_o man_n can_v work_v or_o merit_v any_o thing_n towards_o his_o justification_n and_o salvation_n than_o it_o be_v not_o of_o grace_n say_v the_o apostle_n the_o reward_n be_v not_o of_o grace_n but_o of_o debt_n if_o a_o man_n work_v than_o he_o expect_v wage_n as_o due_a to_o he_o he_o may_v by_o right_n and_o justice_n claim_v what_o he_o deserve_v so_o if_o we_o do_v work_v for_o salvation_n we_o may_v require_v god_n to_o bestow_v and_o give_v we_o what_o we_o have_v wrought_v for_o but_o true_a grace_n shut_v out_o all_o merit_n and_o work_n in_o the_o creature_n if_o we_o can_v bring_v any_o merit_n of_o the_o creature_n to_o join_v with_o his_o grace_n grace_n shall_v be_v no_o more_o grace_n as_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 11.6_o if_o we_o look_v upon_o grace_n as_o it_o be_v in_o god_n so_o before_o god_n we_o be_v save_v in_o his_o eternal_a thought_n he_o in_o his_o own_o purpose_n and_o grace_n have_v elect_v we_o to_o justification_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n in_o glory_n by_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n yet_o he_o never_o hold_v forth_o his_o grace_n to_o we_o but_o in_o the_o countenance_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n in_o who_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o justice_n shine_v bright_a with_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n he_o show_v we_o that_o he_o have_v lay_v all_o our_o sin_n on_o his_o son_n that_o his_o justice_n have_v receive_v full_a satisfaction_n from_o the_o suffering_n of_o his_o son_n for_o all_o our_o sin_n and_o so_o come_v to_o discover_v his_o grace_n to_o we_o in_o the_o pardon_n and_o forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n thus_o christ_n and_o the_o apostle_n constant_o in_o their_o preach_n discover_v the_o grace_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n as_o our_o saviour_n to_o nicodemus_n god_n so_o love_v the_o world_n that_o he_o give_v his_o only_a beget_v son_n that_o whosoever_o believe_v on_o he_o shall_v not_o perish_v joh._n 3._o and_o the_o apostle_n to_o his_o corinthian_n god_n be_v in_o christ_n reconcile_a the_o world_n to_o himself_o 2_o cor._n 5._o god_n do_v not_o make_v know_v his_o love_n for_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n i_o confess_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n in_o respect_n of_o god_n before_o we_o know_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o jeius_n christ_n but_o we_o can_v see_v this_o grace_n until_o we_o behold_v it_o in_o the_o face_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n we_o behold_v the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o give_v the_o lord_n jesus_n to_o be_v the_o atonement_n sacrifice_n and_o propitiation_n for_o our_o sin_n before_o we_o can_v read_v the_o everlasting_a love_n and_o favour_n of_o the_o father_n to_o we_o in_o his_o son_n eternal_a love_n be_v the_o primarie_a cause_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o justification_n but_o it_o can_v be_v apprehend_v by_o we_o until_o we_o apprehend_v in_o the_o first_o place_n our_o redemption_n in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o when_o christ_n be_v embrace_v as_o a_o saviour_n in_o the_o arm_n of_o faith_n we_o rise_v high_o in_o our_o thought_n by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o be_v bring_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o eternity_n of_o love_n and_o have_v liberty_n to_o read_v every_o line_n in_o his_o eternal_a volume_n which_o do_v concern_v our_o eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n and_o be_v full_o confirm_v in_o the_o point_n of_o god_n eternal_a election_n without_o the_o prevision_n of_o good_a work_n which_o shall_v be_v wrought_v by_o the_o creature_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v prove_v at_o large_a in_o the_o 9_o to_o the_o roman_n and_o if_o any_o man_n will_v dispute_v or_o rather_o cavil_v against_o this_o truth_n i_o shall_v say_v with_o the_o apostle_n rom._n
grace_n who_o have_v bestow_v spiritual_a life_n light_n and_o operation_n upon_o we_o the_o apostle_n have_v a_o high_a expression_n to_o raise_v our_o spirit_n to_o this_o purpose_n 2_o cor._n 2.14_o now_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n which_o always_o cause_v we_o to_o triumph_v in_o christ_n when_o man_n triumph_v there_o be_v great_a joy_n rejoice_v and_o show●ing_v we_o be_v not_o only_o to_o rejoice_v in_o his_o grace_n but_o we_o shall_v triumph_v in_o it_o a_o christian_a may_v ride_v in_o a_o chariott_n of_o triumph_n every_o day_n he_o may_v see_v his_o sin_n curse_n hell_n and_o damnation_n subdue_v and_o overcome_v when_o he_o behold_v god_n in_o the_o look_a glass_n of_o his_o own_o grace_n what_o though_o we_o have_v many_o sin_n yet_o for_o all_o this_o we_o may_v triumph_v because_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n have_v save_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n by_o christ_n what_o though_o we_o have_v no_o work_n yet_o we_o may_v triumph_v if_o we_o know_v grace_n there_o be_v enough_o for_o we_o in_o the_o fullness_n of_o grace_n there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o peace_n here_o or_o glory_n hereafter_o but_o by_o grace_n let_v grace_n therefore_o be_v thy_o glory_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v double_a his_o exhortation_n when_o he_o exhort_v they_o to_o rejoice_v that_o they_o may_v double_v their_o diligence_n and_o care_n in_o practice_n of_o their_o duty_n phil._n 4.4_o rejoice_v in_o the_o lord_n always_o and_o again_o i_o say_v rejoice_v so_o suffer_v i_o to_o double_a and_o treble_a my_o exhortation_n you_o have_v nothing_o to_o boast_v in_o but_o grace_n boast_v therefore_o and_o again_o i_o say_v boast_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n god_n seem_v in_o the_o prophet_n isaiah_n to_o speak_v to_o a_o hypocritical_a proud_a people_n and_o he_o bid_v they_o bring_v forth_o their_o argument_n and_o put_v he_o in_o remembrance_n if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v bring_v before_o he_o for_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v justify_v isa_n 43.26_o let_v we_o plead_v together_o declare_v thou_o that_o thou_o may_v be_v justify_v as_o if_o he_o shall_v have_v say_v if_o you_o have_v any_o work_n bring_v they_o out_o use_v all_o your_o argument_n skill_n and_o rhetoric_n say_v what_o you_o can_v for_o yourselves_o to_o plead_v your_o justification_n but_o to_o convince_v they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o stand_v before_o he_o with_o their_o work_n for_o justification_n he_o put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o their_o sin_n thy_o first_o father_n have_v sin_v and_o thy_o teacher_n have_v transgress_v against_o i_o ver_fw-la 27._o to_o this_o end_n and_o purpose_n that_o they_o shall_v believe_v what_o be_v promise_v in_o the_o 25_o verse_n that_o he_o will_v blot_v out_o their_o sin_n for_o his_o own_o sake_n so_o it_o be_v with_o we_o brethren_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v we_o can_v bring_v forth_o sufficient_a reason_n and_o argument_n to_o make_v good_a our_o salvation_n by_o our_o work_n if_o we_o have_v nothing_o to_o comfort_v we_o but_o our_o own_o work_n we_o shall_v have_v no_o comfort_n at_o all_o in_o his_o presence_n let_v we_o therefore_o as_o we_o be_v engage_v trumpet_n out_o the_o praise_n of_o god_n for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o rich_a and_o precious_a grace_n to_o we_o in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n three_o let_v i_o exhort_v you_o to_o abide_v in_o the._n profession_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o end_n of_o your_o day_n hypocrite_n may_v profess_v grace_n for_o a_o time_n but_o true_a saint_n shall_v hold_v fast_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n to_o the_o end_n joh._n 8.31_o if_o you_o continue_v in_o my_o word_n then_o be_v you_o my_o disciple_n indeed_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n exhort_v the_o religious_a proselyte_n of_o antioch_n act_v 13.43_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o continue_v or_o abide_v in_o grace_n look_v up_o to_o god_n for_o grace_n and_o power_n according_a to_o his_o promise_n to_o enable_v you_o to_o hold_v fast_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o grace_n let_v not_o the_o wise_a and_o learned_a of_o the_o world_n cry_v up_o for_o godliness_n religion_n and_o devotion_n draw_v you_o from_o this_o grace_n of_o god_n we_o live_v in_o dangerous_a in_o perilous_a time_n and_o there_o be_v never_o such_o underminer_n of_o grace_n as_o have_v appear_v in_o these_o sinful_a day_n some_o that_o deny_v the_o lord_n that_o buy_v they_o but_o let_v we_o not_o be_v discourage_v because_o some_o who_o have_v profess_a grace_n have_v fall_v from_o their_o profession_n to_o fancy_v frothy_a notion_n antichristian_a absurdity_n and_o familisticall_a speculation_n consider_v rather_o what_o the_o apostle_n affirm_v 1_o cor._n 11.19_o that_o there_o must_v be_v hersy_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v needful_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v such_o that_o they_o which_o be_v approve_v may_v be_v make_v manifest_a the_o devil_n have_v his_o chapalines_n as_o well_o as_o god_n his_o minister_n and_o ambassador_n as_o some_o shall_v be_v send_v of_o god_n to_o hold_v forth_o grace_n for_o the_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n to_o the_o righteousness_n of_o the_o just_a so_o some_o will_v vent_v there_o blasphemous_a conceit_n and_o curse_a imposture_n to_o pervert_v man_n to_o destruction_n if_o the_o good_a god_n sow_v good_a seed_n the_o wicked_a one_o will_v sow_v tare_n among_o the_o wheat_n mat._n 13.24_o when_o the_o gospel_n be_v preach_v with_o power_n there_o be_v multitude_n come_v to_o the_o profession_n of_o it_o but_o after_o a_o while_n many_o of_o these_o fall_n to_o philosophical_a fancy_n foolish_a dream_n vain_a fable_n and_o idle_a speculation_n loathe_v the_o plain_a gospel_n the_o heavenly_a manna_n as_o the_o israelite_n do_v the_o manna_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n this_o we_o begin_v to_o find_v by_o experience_n but_o let_v not_o this_o shake_v we_o from_o our_o steadfastness_n in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n god_n have_v appoint_v it_o to_o be_v so_o paul_n be_v confident_a that_o after_o his_o departure_n from_o the_o congregation_n in_o miletus_n grievous_a wolf_n will_v enter_v in_o among_o they_o not_o spare_v the_o flock_n and_o that_o of_o their_o own_o self_n shall_v man_n arise_v speak_v perverse_a thing_n to_o draw_v away_o disciple_n after_o they_o act._n 20.29_o if_o the_o apostle_n be_v confident_a in_o his_o time_n that_o it_o will_v be_v so_o when_o he_o see_v they_o under_o the_o pure_a discipline_n and_o government_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o charge_n of_o those_o minister_n teacher_n and_o officer_n who_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n appoint_v over_o they_o fill_v with_o those_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o his_o ascension_n what_o wonder_n be_v it_o if_o we_o meet_v with_o the_o devil_n hee-apostle_n and_o she-apostle_n in_o these_o sinful_a time_n who_o vomit_n forth_o bold_o to_o their_o own_o shame_n and_o god_n dishonour_n hellish_a and_o pestiferous_a doctrine_n for_o the_o most_o high_a spiritual_a truth_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n if_o we_o consider_v what_o confusion_n and_o disorder_n be_v among_o the_o best_a of_o saint_n now_o and_o be_v enlighten_v to_o see_v our_o want_n of_o many_o spiritual_a gift_n and_o favour_n which_o they_o enjoy_v which_o for_o the_o present_a god_n do_v not_o bestow_v upon_o we_o again_o let_v not_o the_o abuser_n of_o grace_n cause_n you_o to_o dislike_v grace_n or_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n by_o this_o the_o devil_n may_v take_v great_a advantage_n against_o thou_o for_o thy_o hurt_n thou_o may_v have_v injurious_a thought_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n when_o thou_o eye_v some_o who_o abuse_v grace_n but_o continue_v thou_o in_o grace_n fall_v not_o from_o thy_o profession_n nor_o dislike_v the_o preach_n of_o it_o because_o thou_o observe_v some_o who_o abuse_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n turn_v it_o into_o wantonness_n remember_v that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n some_o gospel_n professor_n do_v walk_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o gospel_n that_o tender-eyed_n paul_n can_v not_o speak_v of_o they_o without_o tear_n in_o his_o eye_n who_o end_n be_v destruction_n who_o god_n be_v their_o belly_n who_o glory_n be_v there_o shame_n who_o mind_v earthly_a thing_n phil._n 3._o yet_o these_o vile_a wretch_n will_v talk_v of_o grace_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n know_v nothing_o right_o of_o grace_n or_o christ_n and_o judas_n do_v acquaint_v we_o with_o some_o in_o his_o time_n that_o be_v creep_v in_o unaware_o turn_v the_o grace_n of_o our_o god_n into_o lasciviousness_n and_o he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o this_o condemnation_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d write_v down_o long_o before_o to_o this_o condemnation_n so_o the_o word_n signify_v for_o as_o god_n have_v appoint_v some_o to_o salvation_n so_o he_o have_v appoint_v some_o to_o damnation_n
discovery_n and_o application_n of_o his_o grace_n unto_o our_o own_o soul_n as_o no_o rational_a man_n when_o he_o read_v those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o the_o woman_n who_o be_v disease_v with_o a_o issue_n of_o blood_n mat._n 9.22_o daughter_n be_v of_o good_a comfort_n thy_o faith_n have_v make_v thou_o whole_a will_v conclude_v that_o because_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o her_o faith_n do_v make_v her_o whole_a that_o therefore_o she_o be_v not_o make_v whole_a by_o jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o principal_a cause_n so_o no_o spiritual_a man_n shall_v conclude_v that_o we_o be_v not_o save_v by_o grace_n as_o the_o principal_a cause_n because_o the_o apostle_n say_v we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n desire_v therefore_o that_o that_o crown_n may_v stand_v fast_o which_o god_n have_v set_v upon_o the_o head_n of_o his_o own_o grace_n i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o show_v you_o that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n or_o through_o faith_n we_o be_v not_o save_v in_o a_o way_n of_o work_v but_o believe_v thus_o god_n save_v and_o justify_v the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a to_o teach_v his_o son_n in_o what_o way_n they_o be_v to_o expect_v salvation_n god_n in_o a_o vision_n inform_v abraham_n that_o he_o be_v his_o shield_n and_o exceed_v great_a reward_n gen._n 15.6_o and_o he_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o he_o count_v it_o to_o he_o for_o righteousness_n this_o be_v the_o oracle_n of_o truth_n which_o habakkuk_n stand_v upon_o his_o watch_n receive_v from_o the_o lord_n hab._n 2.4_o behold_v his_o soul_n who_o be_v lift_v up_o in_o he_o be_v not_o upright_o but_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o faith_n it_o be_v by_o believe_v and_o not_o by_o work_v that_o we_o be_v make_v just_a fides_n justos_fw-la ab_fw-la injustis_fw-la non_fw-la operum_fw-la sed_fw-la ipsa_fw-la fidei_fw-la lege_fw-la discernit_fw-la aug._n truth_n do_v make_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o just_a and_o the_o unjust_a not_o by_o the_o law_n of_o work_n but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o faith_n the_o natural_a man_n know_v no_o righteousness_n but_o what_o be_v by_o his_o own_o work_n the_o spiritual_a man_n do_v see_v himself_o righteous_a in_o believe_v thus_o our_o saviour_n direct_v the_o ignorant_a jew_n to_o the_o right_a way_n of_o righteousness_n when_o they_o ask_v he_o what_o they_o shall_v do_v that_o they_o may_v work_v the_o work_n of_o god_n io._n 6.28_o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n say_v he_o that_o you_o believe_v on_o he_o who_o he_o have_v send_v if_o any_o inquire_v after_o salvation_n let_v he_o know_v it_o be_v not_o by_o work_n the_o plain_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o justification_n be_v only_o by_o believe_v tit._n 2._o the_o grace_n of_o god_n bring_v salvation_n teach_v we_o to_o deny_v all_o ungodliness_n &_o worldly_a lust_n he_o do_v not_o say_v that_o grace_n in_o the_o first_o place_n teach_v we_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n &_o worldly_a lust_n but_o in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o bring_v justification_n &_o salvation_n through_o believe_v &_o then_o secondary_o the_o same_o grace_n teach_v we_o to_o deny_v ungodliness_n &_o worldly_a lust_n after_o we_o have_v believe_v for_o salvation_n the_o holy_a spirit_n be_v give_v ephes_n 1.13_o in_o believe_v we_o enter_v into_o our_o rest_n heb._n 4.3_o keep_v the_o year_n of_o jubilee_n &_o see_v ourselves_o unstated_a in_o happiness_n and_o keep_v a_o christian_n sabbath_n it_o be_v only_o in_o believe_v that_o we_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o that_o felicity_n which_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o apostle_n in_o their_o epistle_n do_v not_o hold_v forth_o any_o truth_n more_o frequent_o than_o this_o gal_n 5.6_o in_o jesus_n christ_n neither_o circumcision_n avail_v any_o thing_n nor_o uncircumcision_n but_o faith_n which_o work_v by_o love_n and_o ro._n 5.1_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n with_o god_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n when_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o prison_n ask_v paul_n &_o silas_n what_o they_o shall_v do_v to_o be_v save_v suppose_v salvation_n be_v only_o attainable_a by_o work_v they_o do_v at_o one_o discover_v unto_o he_o his_o error_n &_o blindness_n &_o acquaint_v he_o with_o the_o soulsaving_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n assure_v he_o that_o if_o he_o believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o shall_v be_v save_v act_n 16.31_o we_o find_v not_o rest_v in_o our_o spirit_n by_o the_o sight_n of_o our_o work_n love_n sincerity_n labour_n &_o endeavour_n but_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o christ_n have_v by_o these_o place_n of_o scripture_n confirm_v to_o you_o this_o truth_n i_o shall_v now_o amplyfie_v it_o by_o show_v unto_o you_o more_o full_o how_o it_o may_v be_v in_o truth_n affirm_v that_o we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o by_o faith_n alone_o not_o by_o faith_n join_v with_o work_n but_o by_o faith_n without_o work_n i_o deny_v not_o but_o where_o true_a faith_n be_v work_n will_v follow_v yet_o salvation_n be_v through_o faith_n without_o work_n when_o we_o be_v bring_v into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n we_o enter_v not_o into_o the_o bosom_n of_o his_o love_n by_o our_o love_n and_o faith_n together_o but_o by_o faith_n which_o produce_v love_n our_o eye_n be_v shut_v to_o the_o behold_v all_o thing_n in_o ourselves_o and_o the_o eye_n of_o our_o spirit_n be_v enlighten_v to_o behold_v what_o be_v in_o god_n grace_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n consonant_a to_o this_o be_v paul_n sweet_a and_o comfortable_a conclusion_n rom._n 3.28_o we_o conclude_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n love_n to_o god_n and_o his_o people_n be_v a_o work_n command_v by_o the_o law_n but_o according_a to_o paul_n conclusion_n of_o truth_n we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o deed_n of_o the_o law_n therefore_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o love_n to_o god_n or_o his_o people_n when_o god_n discover_v his_o grace_n to_o a_o man_n for_o his_o justification_n he_o show_v he_o that_o as_o his_o evil_a work_n can_v bring_v damnation_n unto_o he_o so_o his_o good_a work_n can_v be_v available_a for_o his_o justification_n that_o assurance_n of_o god_n love_n which_o some_o professor_n have_v get_v by_o the_o sight_n of_o their_o own_o work_n be_v never_o illuminate_v in_o their_o understanding_n to_o behold_v god_n grace_n in_o the_o light_n and_o beam_n of_o grace_n be_v not_o the_o true_a assurance_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o the_o deceit_n and_o lie_a divination_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n concern_v their_o own_o happiness_n for_o salvation_n be_v by_o faith_n without_o work_n god_n do_v not_o require_v we_o to_o do_v good_a work_n for_o salvation_n in_o the_o conscience_n but_o do_v positive_o and_o absolute_o exclude_v they_o as_o thing_n which_o have_v no_o influence_n at_o all_o upon_o that_o first_o assurance_n which_o he_o do_v give_v unto_o his_o people_n of_o his_o love_n which_o be_v by_o a_o pure_a simple_a unmix_a act_n of_o faith_n the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n be_v never_o give_v to_o comfort_v we_o until_o god_n have_v strip_v we_o of_o our_o own_o righteousness_n work_n and_o performance_n and_o have_v bring_v we_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o free_a grace_n without_o any_o thing_n in_o ourselves_o that_o may_v make_v we_o fit_a for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n the_o apostle_n do_v lay_v down_o this_o as_o a_o truth_n second_v by_o his_o own_o experience_n and_o the_o experience_n of_o all_o true_a saint_n gal._n 2.16_o assert_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o jesus_n christ_n even_o we_o say_v he_o have_v believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n for_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n shall_v no_o flesh_n be_v justify_v it_o be_v not_o as_o the_o papist_n say_v that_o faith_n which_o have_v love_n join_v with_o it_o which_o they_o make_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v but_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n without_o any_o work_n at_o all_o by_o which_o we_o be_v justify_v and_o have_v peace_n of_o conscience_n augustine_n do_v plain_o lay_v down_o his_o judgement_n in_o this_o point_n according_a to_o truth_n noli_fw-la presumere_fw-la de_fw-la operibus_fw-la ante_fw-la fidem_fw-la quia_fw-la peccatorem_fw-la te_fw-la fides_fw-la invenit_fw-la etsi_fw-la te_fw-la fides_fw-la data_fw-la facit_fw-la justum_fw-la impium_fw-la invenit_fw-la quem_fw-la faceret_fw-la justum_fw-la presume_v not_o upon_o thy_o work_n do_v before_o faith_n because_o faith_n find_v thou_o a_o
all_o the_o commandment_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o cause_n of_o this_o legallnesse_n in_o their_o spirit_n be_v because_o they_o do_v not_o see_v salvation_n firm_o settle_v upon_o he_o that_o believe_v the_o spiritual_a man_n behold_v justife_v grace_n in_o believe_v without_o his_o obedience_n to_o command_n for_o external_a worship_n and_o good_a work_n and_o do_v live_v joyful_o and_o comfortable_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o his_o justification_n though_o he_o know_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a that_o he_o may_v be_v ignorant_a of_o many_o thing_n which_o other_o christian_n may_v have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o and_o in_o these_o day_n of_o darkness_n contention_n confusion_n and_o disorder_n what_o man_n can_v have_v solid_a and_o last_a joy_n who_o be_v ignorant_a of_o free_a grace_n for_o justification_n if_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o assurance_n of_o justification_n to_o know_v whether_o the_o episcopal_a presbyterial_a or_o independent_a government_n be_v the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n whether_o sprinkle_v of_o child_n or_o dip_v of_o profess_v believer_n be_v the_o institution_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o labyrinth_n of_o the_o controversy_n of_o our_o time_n how_o few_o will_v attain_v to_o a_o assurance_n of_o their_o justification_n how_o will_v poor_a creature_n be_v perplex_v and_o disquiet_v in_o their_o conscience_n not_o certain_o know_v in_o which_o of_o these_o way_n they_o shall_v walk_v for_o their_o justification_n and_o salvation_n but_o that_o the_o promise_n may_v be_v sure_a to_o all_o the_o seed_n rom._n 4.16_o to_o those_o who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n as_o well_o as_o to_o those_o who_o live_v in_o these_o time_n of_o the_o gospel_n salvation_n be_v promise_v not_o to_o worker_n but_o believer_n to_o all_o true_a believer_n in_o all_o age_n and_o place_n to_o we_o who_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o babylonish-apostacy_n as_o well_o as_o to_o those_o who_o be_v hearer_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o member_n of_o those_o congregation_n which_o be_v gather_v and_o govern_v by_o they_o six_o by_o faith_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v apply_v unto_o we_o and_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o as_o the_o spiritual_a instrument_n form_v by_o god_n in_o the_o spirit_n for_o the_o application_n of_o christ_n benefit_n to_o our_o conscience_n a_o man_n that_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o law_n look_v upon_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o sacrifice_n do_v behold_v himself_o purge_v purify_a and_o sanctify_v in_o his_o flesh_n by_o it_o heb._n 9.13_o so_o a_o sinner_n look_v upon_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v apply_v unto_o he_o and_o his_o conscience_n be_v purge_v from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n ver_fw-la 14._o i'faith_o though_o it_o be_v call_v a_o work_n 2_o thess_n 1.11_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d yet_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o it_o as_o it_o be_v a_o work_n or_o gracious_a quality_n but_o as_o it_o be_v the_o hand_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o we_o receive_v and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o those_o treasure_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v free_o give_v unto_o we_o in_o christ_n jesus_n christ_n bath_n already_o do_v what_o be_v to_o be_v do_v by_o way_n of_o satisfaction_n to_o the_o justice_n of_o his_o father_n and_o have_v already_o make_v peace_n by_o the_o blood_n of_o his_o cross_n col._n 1.20_o what_o he_o do_v in_o we_o now_o be_v to_o satisfy_v our_o conscience_n concern_v our_o full_a redemption_n by_o he_o that_o you_o in_o believe_a may_v be_v fill_v with_o peace_n of_o conscience_n be_v persuade_v that_o we_o be_v of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n who_o by_o the_o father_n be_v make_v unto_o we_o wisdom_n and_o righteousness_n and_o sanctification_n and_o redemption_n 1_o cor._n 1.30_o faith_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o light_n come_v from_o god_n &_o christ_n discover_v god_n and_o christ_n to_o our_o spirit_n and_o unite_n our_o spirit_n to_o god_n in_o christ_n by_o faith_n we_o believe_v what_o be_v record_v concern_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n as_o the_o prophet_n to_o my_o apprehension_n hold_v it_o forth_o in_o those_o expression_n of_o his_o isa_n 53.1_o who_o have_v believe_v our_o report_n and_o to_o who_o be_v the_o arm_n of_o the_o lord_n reveal_v in_o the_o latter_a part_n of_o these_o word_n the_o prophet_n do_v interpret_v the_o former_a part_n he_o believe_v the_o report_n of_o god_n to_o who_o the_o arm_n of_o god_n that_o be_v his_o son_n jesus_n be_v reveal_v and_o when_o a_o man_n believe_v in_o christ_n christ_n be_v reveal_v to_o that_o man_n faith_n be_v the_o first_o thing_n that_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o man_n who_o god_n do_v justify_v in_o his_o own_o conscience_n by_o which_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v reveal_v unto_o he_o for_o his_o justification_n justify_v faith_n when_o it_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o powerful_a operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o heart_n do_v remove_v prevail_v doubt_n concern_v our_o justification_n the_o faithful_a behold_v the_o all-righteousnesse_n of_o free_a grace_n &_o apply_v to_o his_o conscience_n the_o cleanse_v virtue_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n faith_n be_v a_o gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n establish_v the_o soul_n isa_n 7.9_o if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v sure_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v establish_v the_o soul_n can_v never_o be_v firm_o settle_v and_o quiet_v but_o by_o believe_v unbelief_n do_v question_n and_o doubt_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o free_a grace_n for_o justification_n but_o when_o in_o the_o power_n of_o faith_n we_o be_v carry_v above_o it_o with_o abraham_n rom._n 4.20_o we_o stagger_v not_o at_o the_o promise_n through_o unbelief_n but_o the_o spirit_n be_v fix_v and_o stand_v immovable_o upon_o the_o truth_n of_o grace_n god_n say_v in_o the_o covenant_n of_o his_o grace_n heb._n 8.12_o i_o will_v be_v merciful_a to_o their_o unrighteousness_n and_o their_o sin_n and_o their_o iniquity_n will_v i_o remember_v no_o more_o he_o that_o believe_v do_v set_v his_o seal_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n in_o believe_v the_o promise_n john_n 3.33_o he_o be_v confident_a that_o god_n be_v faithful_a who_o have_v make_v this_o promise_n to_o the_o child_n of_o man_n and_o by_o believe_v the_o great_a and_o precious_a promise_n of_o grace_n he_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n 2_o pet._n 1.4_o by_o a_o heart_n of_o unbelief_n we_o depart_v from_o the_o live_a god_n heb._n 3.12_o but_o by_o faith_n we_o draw_v near_o to_o god_n and_o apply_v christ_n to_o ourselves_o faith_n be_v contrary_a to_o unbelief_n as_o in_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o so_o in_o its_o operation_n a_o unbeliever_n do_v not_o give_v credit_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o general_a promise_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o so_o remain_v unjustified_a in_o his_o conscience_n a_o believer_n in_o faith_n nothing_o waver_v james_n 1.6_o do_v give_v credit_n to_o what_o be_v report_v and_o the_o gospel_n come_v to_o he_o not_o in_o word_n only_o but_o in_o power_n and_o the_o holy_a spirit_n and_o in_o much_o assurance_n 1._o thessalonian_o 1.5_o object_n but_o some_o may_v be_v ready_a here_o to_o object_v this_o against_o what_o i_o have_v deliver_v that_o though_o i_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o by_o faith_n grace_n in_o christ_n be_v apply_v unto_o we_o yet_o in_o effect_n i_o say_v no_o more_o than_o what_o i_o deliver_v before_o when_o i_o prove_v that_o by_o faith_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v first_o manifest_v and_o make_v over_o unto_o we_o answ_n they_o misapprehend_v i_o when_o they_o conclude_v that_o i_o make_v faith_n only_o a_o assurance_n of_o because_o i_o do_v maintain_v that_o it_o be_v the_o first_o evidence_n and_o witness_n of_o our_o justification_n faith_n do_v assure_v but_o it_o do_v not_o only_o assure_v we_o of_o christ_n but_o do_v apply_v christ_n and_o make_v a_o difference_n between_o assurance_n and_o application_n which_o i_o illustrate_v by_o this_o similitude_n suppose_v one_o shall_v lie_v in_o prison_n for_o debt_n his_o debt_n be_v pay_v and_o he_o not_o know_v it_o and_o afterward_o know_v that_o his_o debt_n be_v pay_v he_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o the_o news_n and_o enjoy_v his_o liberty_n this_o man_n do_v not_o by_o the_o news_n which_o he_o hear_v enjoy_v only_o comfort_n but_o his_o liberty_n so_o it_o be_v with_o we_o before_o we_o believe_v we_o lie_v in_o prison_n and_o yet_o our_o debt_n be_v pay_v by_o jesus_n christ_n when_o the_o news_n be_v bring_v by_o the_o spirit_n to_o the_o ear_n of_o the_o soul_n we_o rejoice_v in_o hear_v the_o news_n but_o beside_o this_o present_o we_o enjoy_v our_o liberty_n and_o all_o those_o riches_n which_o our_o
the_o world_n but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o saviour_n to_o they_o thus_o paul_n preach_v to_o the_o keeper_n of_o the_o prison_n act._n 16.31_o believe_v on_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o thou_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o thy_o house_n as_o when_o they_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o repentance_n or_o changednesse_n of_o the_o mind_n their_o meaning_n be_v that_o every_o man_n ought_v to_o be_v change_v so_o when_o they_o urge_v believe_v for_o salvation_n their_o meaning_n be_v that_o we_o shall_v believe_v for_o our_o own_o salvation_n in_o particular_a the_o general_a truth_n of_o faith_n and_o repentance_n be_v to_o believe_v by_o a_o power_n enable_v we_o in_o particular_a for_o ourselves_o to_o believe_v and_o repent_v last_o we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n because_o by_o faith_n we_o hear_v the_o inward_a word_n of_o salvation_n the_o word_n which_o sound_v to_o the_o outward_a ear_n without_o this_o inward_a word_n bring_v no_o salvation_n as_o the_o philosopher_n tell_v he_o who_o reprehend_v he_o for_o publish_v and_o divulge_v a_o book_n of_o philosophy_n that_o he_o have_v publish_v it_o and_o he_o have_v not_o publish_v it_o his_o meaning_n be_v this_o that_o it_o be_v so_o dark_a and_o mystical_a that_o though_o it_o be_v publish_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o publish_v to_o the_o ignorant_a and_o unlearned_a so_o the_o gospel_n in_o the_o letter_n be_v publish_v to_o man_n and_o not_o publish_v they_o hear_v and_o do_v not_o hear_v they_o see_v and_o do_v not_o see_v but_o by_o faith_n we_o so_o hear_v that_o our_o soul_n live_v by_o hear_v isa_n 55.3_o the_o dead_a say_v our_o saviour_n shall_v hear_v the_o voice_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o they_o that_o hear_v shall_v live_v fidei_fw-la oculi_fw-la sunt_fw-la spiritus_fw-la per_fw-la quem_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la videntur_fw-la cypr_fw-la the_o spirit_n be_v a_o eye_n to_o a_o believe_a man_n by_o which_o he_o see_v and_o enjoy_v spiritual_a thing_n we_o receive_v not_o the_o spirit_n by_o hear_v the_o law_n or_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o hear_n of_o faith_n gal._n 3.2_o eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n be_v by_o hear_v the_o inward_a word_n of_o life_n salvation_n and_o grace_n god_n bid_v the_o prophet_n ezech_v 38.5_o to_o prophesy_v over_o the_o dry_a bone_n that_o they_o may_v live_v the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v the_o great_a invisible_a prophet_n who_o prophesi_v over_o dry_a bone_n and_o deadhearted_n sinner_n and_o by_o hear_v inward_o the_o inward_a word_n of_o this_o prophet_n they_o live_v in_o hear_v and_o believe_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v say_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o faith_n have_v by_o these_o particular_n acquaint_v you_o with_o my_o judgement_n concern_v our_o salvation_n through_o faith_n i_o shall_v now_o by_o the_o same_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n draw_v some_o useful_a conclusion_n from_o the_o premise_n and_o so_o put_v a_o period_n to_o my_o discourse_n for_o the_o present_a first_o this_o do_v discover_v unto_o we_o the_o usefulness_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o unfeigned_a faith_n of_o the_o elect_a as_o noah_n be_v preserve_v from_o the_o destruction_n which_o come_v upon_o the_o old_a world_n by_o go_v for_o his_o safety_n into_o the_o ark_n so_o by_o the_o foot_n of_o faith_n we_o walk_v into_o our_o ark_n christ_n jesus_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n the_o world_n of_o sin_n be_v a_o dismal_a wilderness_n full_a of_o fiery_a serpent_n by_o faith_n we_o eye_n jesus_n christ_n as_o our_o brazen_a serpent_n and_o set_v foot_v in_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n of_o god_n grace_n while_o the_o sinful_a sodom_n of_o the_o world_n be_v destroy_v with_o the_o rain_n of_o fire_n and_o brimstone_n by_o faith_n like_o righteous_a lot_n we_o escape_v out_o of_o it_o when_o with_o peter_n we_o be_v ready_a to_o sink_v and_o perish_v in_o the_o sea_n of_o sin_n by_o faith_n we_o touch_v the_o save_a arm_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o be_v preserve_v when_o we_o drink_v the_o deadly_a poison_n of_o sin_n by_o faith_n we_o take_v in_o jesus_n christ_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o antidote_n and_o the_o deadly_a poison_n do_v not_o hurt_v we_o but_o we_o be_v miraculous_o preserve_v faith_n behold_v christ_n crucify_v before_o we_o gal._n 3.2_o and_o evident_o set_v forth_o who_o have_v nail_v the_o law_n of_o work_n our_o sin_n and_o death_n to_o his_o own_o cross_n and_o we_o who_o deserve_v damnation_n be_v save_v through_o grace_n christ_n be_v the_o man_n who_o be_v a_o hide_v place_n from_o the_o wind_n and_o a_o covert_n from_o the_o tempest_n isa_n 32.2_o sin_n be_v a_o noxious_a and_o a_o destroy_a wind_n as_o wind_n in_o the_o cavern_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v a_o cause_n of_o a_o earthquake_n so_o sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o destroy_v earthquake_n in_o the_o earthly_a heart_n of_o man_n but_o christ_n be_v our_o hide_v place_n in_o which_o through_o believe_v we_o be_v safe_a the_o devil_n infernal_a wind_n and_o blast_n destroy_v many_o a_o soul_n with_o which_o he_o fill_v it_o with_o hellish_a error_n and_o impiety_n to_o its_o destruction_n act_v 5.3_o christ_n fill_v his_o people_n by_o breathe_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n for_o their_o salvation_n but_o christ_n be_v a_o shelter_n from_o the_o infernal_a blast_n of_o satan_n and_o while_o carnal_a and_o unbelieved_a man_n be_v as_o a_o ship_n under_o sail_n and_o the_o devil_n unto_o they_o be_v as_o a_o powerful_a wind_n violent_o blow_v they_o to_o destruction_n act_v 26.18_o christ_n by_o enable_v his_o people_n to_o believe_v do_v blow_v they_o with_o the_o pleasant_a gale_n of_o his_o sweet_a spirit_n to_o the_o haven_n of_o peace_n and_o safety_n though_o there_o be_v infectious_a and_o destroy_v wind_n upon_o earth_n yet_o there_o be_v none_o in_o heaven_n so_o though_o the_o man_n of_o the_o earth_n be_v infect_v with_o the_o wind_n of_o sin_n and_o satan_n to_o their_o ruin_n yet_o they_o who_o live_v in_o the_o heaven_n of_o god_n grace_n by_o faith_n jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o defence_n unto_o they_o when_o darkness_n and_o tempest_n be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n from_o the_o law_n which_o they_o have_v break_v christ_n who_o rebuke_v the_o tempest_n of_o the_o sea_n mat._n 8.2_o do_v rebuke_n tempestates_fw-la mentis_fw-la high_a the_o tempest_n of_o our_o trouble_a mind_n and_o conscience_n and_o by_o believe_v there_o be_v a_o great_a calm_a in_o the_o soul_n sin_n in_o the_o soul_n be_v like_o jonah_n in_o the_o ship_n which_o bring_v a_o tempest_n with_o it_o but_o christ_n through_o faith_n do_v cast_v this_o tempest-raiser_n into_o the_o sea_n of_o his_o father_n grace_n and_o the_o soul_n be_v quiet_v and_o fill_v with_o joy_n and_o peace_n in_o believe_v the_o philosopher_n say_v that_o logic_n to_o a_o rational_a and_o learned_a man_n be_v the_o instrument_n of_o instrument_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d without_o which_o he_o shall_v make_v little_a proficiency_n in_o other_o art_n and_o science_n so_o faith_n be_v the_o organ_n or_o instrument_n to_o the_o spiritual_a man_n by_o which_o he_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o wisdom_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o which_o he_o be_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n and_o without_o which_o he_o can_v do_v nothing_o second_o this_o discover_v the_o reason_n why_o the_o devil_n and_o his_o agent_n do_v so_o much_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o preach_n of_o it_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o man_n salvation_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n through_o which_o we_o be_v save_v the_o devil_n do_v what_o he_o please_v to_o those_o who_o be_v without_o faith_n as_o be_v unable_a to_o resist_v he_o unbelieved_a man_n be_v like_o the_o israelite_n without_o a_o shield_n or_o spear_n to_o defend_v themselves_o judas_n 5.7_o and_o the_o devil_n do_v lead_v they_o captive_a at_o his_o will_n 2_o tim._n 2.26_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o wild_a beast_n be_v master_v and_o rule_v by_o those_o who_o have_v take_v they_o in_o a_o snare_n or_o net_n so_o the_o word_n fignifi_v but_o when_o we_o believe_v to_o salvation_n we_o be_v furnish_v with_o power_n to_o oppose_v he_o who_o seek_v our_o damnation_n when_o we_o believe_v we_o be_v arm_v against_o his_o encounter_n and_o fit_v against_o his_o opposition_n faith_n be_v the_o soul_n defensive_a shield_n by_o which_o all_o his_o fiery_a dart_n be_v quench_v eph._n 6.16_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v that_o he_o do_v always_o raise_v opposition_n persecution_n and_o reproach_n against_o the_o doctrine_n and_o professor_n of_o faith_n three_o see_v salvation_n be_v by_o faith_n examine_v thyself_o concern_v thy_o salvation_n by_o try_v thy_o faith_n man_n that_o be_v not_o
in_o the_o faith_n who_o have_v not_o christ_n in_o they_o be_v not_o approve_v christian_n 2_o cor._n 13.5_o know_v you_o not_o your_o own_o self_n how_o that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o you_o except_o you_o be_v reprobate_n the_o word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d except_o you_o be_v unapprove_v it_o be_v possible_a that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v in_o a_o state_n of_o unbelief_n and_o yet_o no_o reprobate_n but_o he_o that_o can_v prove_v that_o he_o have_v faith_n can_v prove_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o christian_a or_o in_o a_o state_n of_o salvation_n querie_n it_o in_o thy_o soul_n whether_o thou_o have_v such_o a_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o you_o have_v hear_v that_o we_o be_v save_v through_o faith_n which_o be_v a_o supernatural_a gift_n of_o the_o spirit_n by_o which_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o natural_a man_n can_v apprehend_v concern_v salvation_n be_v make_v plain_a to_o the_o soul_n supernatural_a thing_n can_v be_v know_v but_o by_o something_o which_o be_v supernatural_a as_o the_o thing_n of_o nature_n be_v know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n thing_n of_o reason_n by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n so_o the_o thing_n of_o eternal_a life_n and_o salvation_n by_o the_o supernatural_a gift_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o evidence_n of_o the_o supernatural_a thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v invisible_a heb_fw-mi 11.1_o abraham_n believe_v against_o hope_n rom._n 4.18_o so_o a_o spiritual_a man_n believe_v the_o thing_n of_o glory_n and_o eternal_a life_n which_o the_o short_a line_n of_o natural_a reason_n can_v reach_v or_o fathom_n and_o which_o natural_o he_o can_v hope_v for_o or_o expect_v be_v thy_o faith_n who_o do_v profess_v thyself_o a_o child_n of_o abraham_n such_o a_o faith_n as_o abraham_n faith_n be_v who_o be_v the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a second_o true_a believer_n see_v their_o salvation_n by_o faith_n alone_o though_o a_o man_n have_v many_o seed_n together_o in_o his_o hand_n yet_o he_o may_v know_v the_o various_a and_o diverse_a nature_n of_o those_o several_a seed_n so_o though_o a_o justify_v man_n have_v many_o precious_a seed_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o his_o heart_n yet_o he_o know_v the_o several_a nature_n of_o they_o all_o though_o he_o have_v love_n to_o god_n in_o his_o heart_n as_o well_o as_o faith_n in_o god_n yet_o he_o know_v the_o nature_n of_o faith_n which_o alone_o be_v avaylable_a to_o justification_n try_v whether_o thou_o have_v be_v enable_v to_o fly_v to_o the_o strong_a tower_n of_o god_n grace_n for_o safety_n against_o hell_n sin_n and_o devil_n by_o the_o silver_n wing_n of_o faith_n without_o the_o help_n of_o work_n for_o justification_n three_o a_o believer_n see_v justification_n can_v be_v by_o grace_n if_o work_n and_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v conjoin_v for_o justification_n gratia_n non_fw-la est_fw-la gratia_fw-la ullo_fw-la modo_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la gratuita_fw-la omni_fw-la modo_fw-la grace_n be_v not_o grace_n in_o any_o way_n unless_o it_o be_v free_a and_o undeserved_a every_o way_n grace_n be_v not_o free_a and_o undeserved_a unless_o it_o be_v reach_v forth_o without_o any_o consideration_n of_o our_o own_o work_n which_o be_v only_o through_o faith_n try_v whether_o god_n have_v teach_v thou_o this_o lesson_n of_o truth_n four_o faith_n do_v take_v the_o glory_n of_o justistification_n from_o the_o creature_n and_o give_v it_o unto_o grace_n have_v thou_o learn_v to_o sing_v the_o new_a song_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o redeem_v one_o before_o the_o throne_n cry_v salvation_n only_o to_o god_n who_o sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n and_o to_o the_o lamb._n five_o be_v thou_o full_o persuade_v of_o god_n power_n and_o faithfulness_n who_o have_v leave_v promise_n of_o grace_n upon_o record_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o poor_a sinner_n be_v thou_o with_o abraham_n suy_o persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n promise_v of_o grace_n in_o reference_n to_o thyself_o i_o remember_v what_o one_o of_o the_o ancient_n say_v that_o to_o profess_v christ_n without_o assurance_n be_v to_o be_v without_o faith_n live_v in_o the_o household_n of_o faith_n fidem_fw-la in_fw-la domo_fw-la fidei_fw-la non_fw-la habere_fw-la cypr._n a_o spiritual_a man_n be_v that_o which_o he_o believe_v himself_o to_o be_v id_fw-la esse_fw-la incipit_fw-la quod_fw-la se_fw-la esse_fw-la credit_n he_o believe_v that_o he_o be_v positive_o and_o negative_o righteous_a in_o christ_n free_v from_o sin_n and_o make_v a_o partaker_n of_o a_o glorious_a righteousness_n for_o his_o justification_n and_o so_o he_o be_v of_o a_o leper_n by_o believe_v in_o a_o instant_n make_v whole_a he_o believe_v that_o he_o owe_v nothing_o to_o his_o creditor_n and_o his_o creditor_n believe_v so_o too_o six_o a_o believe_a man_n be_v bone_n of_o the_o bone_n flesh_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o one_o spirit_n with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n there_o be_v a_o close_a &_o near_a union_n &_o application_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o soul_n by_o faith_n do_v thou_o in_o believe_v see_v thyself_o a_o member_n of_o christ_n as_o thy_o hand_n or_o foot_n be_v a_o part_n of_o thy_o body_n be_v christ_n the_o quicken_a spirit_n of_o thy_o spirit_n to_o enliven_v that_o as_o thy_o spirit_n be_v the_o spirit_n which_o do_v enliven_v thy_o body_n 7_o lie_n do_v thou_o so_o live_v by_o faith_n that_o thou_o look_v upon_o christ_n as_o thy_o life_n and_o righteousness_n more_o than_o faith_n not_o suffer_v any_o persuasion_n which_o thou_o call_v thy_o righteousness_n to_o sit_v in_o the_o uppermost_a room_n of_o thy_o heart_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o god_n glory_n in_o christ_n a_o spiritual_a heart_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d mac_n the_o throne_n of_o the_o deity_n where_o god_n in_o christ_n be_v exalt_v as_o the_o chief_a righteousness_n of_o the_o soul_n be_v it_o so_o in_o thou_o john_n 14.1_o 8_o lie_n have_v thou_o by_o faith_n as_o a_o instrument_n touch_v the_o hem_n of_o christ_n garment_n for_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o bloody_a issue_n of_o thy_o own_o soul_n he_o that_o be_v wise_a and_o good_a be_v wise_a and_o good_a for_o himself_o and_o if_o thou_o be_v true_o wise_a and_o good_a thou_o be_v wise_a in_o apply_v christ_n to_o make_v thyself_o wise_a and_o good_a last_o be_v thy_o faith_n such_o a_o faith_n through_o which_o christ_n have_v inward_o discover_v himself_o unto_o thou_o form_v and_o create_v himself_o in_o thou_o job_n 32.8_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o almighty_a give_v understanding_n if_o thy_o faith_n be_v true_a it_o be_v by_o inward_a inspiration_n quer._n but_o must_v we_o have_v such_o a_o faith_n if_o we_o will_v be_v the_o child_n of_o believe_a abraham_n answ_n every_o true_a believer_n have_v such_o a_o faith_n for_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o though_o not_o for_o the_o perfection_n of_o the_o degree_n of_o it_o there_o be_v a_o perfect_a &_o fair_a copy_n of_o faith_n in_o those_o who_o have_v be_v present_v unto_o thou_o thou_o be_v to_o have_v the_o same_o copy_n write_v forth_o upon_o thy_o heart_n though_o it_o may_v not_o be_v so_o fair_o write_v forth_o at_o the_o first_o but_o if_o it_o be_v a_o true_a copy_n of_o faith_n thou_o have_v no_o cause_n to_o question_v thy_o assurance_n though_o thou_o do_v find_v it_o very_o weak_a at_o the_o present_a a_o palsey-shaken_a hand_n may_v receive_v a_o gift_n and_o a_o weak_a faith_n may_v receive_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n a_o dwarf_n be_v a_o man_n as_o well_o as_o a_o giant_n though_o not_o so_o tall_a and_o one_o who_o be_v but_o a_o dwarf_n and_o low_a in_o christianity_n by_o the_o weakness_n of_o his_o faith_n may_v be_v a_o christian_n as_o well_o as_o those_o who_o be_v of_o a_o tall_a stature_n in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n three_o this_o which_o have_v be_v deliver_v may_v be_v for_o the_o strengthen_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o increase_a the_o comfort_n of_o those_o who_o have_v lay_v hold_v of_o salvation_n by_o a_o lively_a faith_n on_o jesus_n christ_n comfort_n be_v increase_v by_o the_o same_o mean_n by_o which_o they_o be_v wrought_v at_o the_o first_o and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n pray_v for_o the_o roman_n that_o the_o lord_n will_v fill_v they_o with_o all_o joy_n and_o peace_n in_o believe_v rom._n 15.13_o our_o comfort_n be_v low_a because_o our_o faith_n be_v weak_a comfort_n flow_v in_o by_o renew_a act_n of_o faith_n satan_n will_v rob_v we_o of_o our_o comfort_n by_o wrest_v faith_n which_o be_v our_o shield_n from_o we_o ephes_n 6.16_o and_o this_o be_v one_o way_n in_o which_o he_o do_v labour_n to_o weaken_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o saint_n by_o suggest_v this_o unto_o the_o saint_n that_o salvation_n be_v not_o only_o through_o faith_n but_o against_o this_o
temptation_n and_o all_o his_o other_o fiery_a dart_n we_o may_v hold_v forth_o this_o buckler_n of_o truth_n that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n answer_v he_o therefore_o from_o this_o truth_n and_o he_o will_v be_v silence_v resist_v he_o in_o believe_v this_o truth_n and_o hec_fw-la will_v flee_v from_o thou_o jam._n 4.7_o and_o the_o spirit_n will_v fly_v into_o thy_o soul_n to_o comfort_v thou_o so_o long_o as_o abraham_n live_v he_o live_v as_o a_o justify_v man_n by_o faith_n so_o long_o as_o paul_n live_v he_o live_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n gal._n 2._o we_o die_v rather_o than_o live_v when_o we_o be_v not_o under_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n enable_v we_o to_o believe_v we_o lie_v down_o either_o in_o the_o bed_n of_o carnal_a security_n or_o familisticall_a antichristianisme_n or_o fall_v under_o the_o bondage_n of_o the_o law_n when_o we_o step_v aside_o from_o the_o plain_a doctrine_n of_o salvation_n by_o faith_n in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n and_o therefore_o the_o flesh_n and_o the_o devil_n the_o great_a enemy_n to_o a_o saint_n comfort_n do_v join_v themselves_o together_o to_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n satan_n know_v that_o faith_n and_o work_n be_v inconsistent_a in_o point_n of_o justification_n and_o when_o he_o observe_v that_o we_o be_v in_o some_o measure_n convince_v that_o salvation_n be_v by_o faith_n he_o endeavour_v to_o persuade_v we_o that_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o work_v and_o will_v divide_v our_o justification_n between_o faith_n and_o work_v as_o the_o harlet_n cry_v out_o 1_o king_n 3.26_o concern_v the_o child_n neither_o mine_n nor_o thou_o but_o divide_v it_o so_o the_o devil_n will_v have_v we_o divide_v our_o justification_n &_o attribute_v half_a of_o it_o to_o faith_n and_o give_v the_o other_o part_n to_o work_n but_o the_o believe_a man_n see_v that_o there_o be_v salvation_n in_o christ_n and_o not_o in_o any_o other_o and_o that_o no_o other_o name_n under_o heaven_n be_v give_v among_o man_n whereby_o they_o must_v be_v save_v act_v 4.12_o and_o that_o we_o rest_v upon_o this_o name_n for_o salvation_n only_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o have_v boldness_n &_o access_n with_o confidence_n by_o the_o faith_n of_o he_o ephesian_n 3.12_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d we_o be_v manuduce_v and_o lead_v by_o the_o hand_n as_o it_o be_v with_o persuasion_n of_o christ_n goodness_n to_o we_o by_o faith_n in_o christ_n continue_v in_o that_o faith_n by_o which_o paul_n be_v justify_v who_o believe_v that_o christ_n love_v he_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o he_o and_o thy_o comfort_n and_o peace_n shall_v be_v continue_v unto_o the._n it_o it_o melancthons_n observation_n that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o we_o translate_v faith_n do_v most_o usual_o signify_v a_o firm_a assent_n unto_o a_o thing_n usitatissimum_fw-la est_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pro_fw-la firma_fw-la ascensione_n dicere_fw-la doubt_v be_v that_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o faith_n jam._n 1.6_o believe_v therefore_o strong_o and_o thou_o shall_v have_v a_o strong_a peace_n rom._n 5._o believe_v that_o there_o be_v no_o remission_n of_o sin_n but_o by_o god_n indulgence_n but_o believe_v this_o withal_o that_o by_o he_o thy_o sin_n be_v forgive_v thou_o say_v add_v ut_fw-la credas_fw-la et_fw-la hoc_fw-la quod_fw-la per_fw-la ipsum_fw-la peccata_fw-la tibi_fw-la donantur_fw-la bern._n this_o be_v the_o faith_n which_o bring_v peace_n and_o consolation_n to_o the_o soul_n by_o this_o we_o be_v bring_v from_o fin_n to_o christ_n righteousness_n from_o mount_n sanai_n to_o mount_v zion_n from_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o law_n to_o the_o region_n of_o grace_n from_o bondage_n to_o liberty_n from_o death_n to_o life_n from_o the_o fear_n of_o hell_n to_o the_o assurance_n of_o heaven_n and_o happiness_n archimedes_n be_v so_o delight_v in_o the_o study_n of_o the_o mathematics_n that_o when_o the_o enemy_n who_o besiege_v the_o place_n where_o he_o live_v break_v in_o unto_o it_o he_o hear_v not_o the_o noise_n and_o shout_n of_o the_o soldier_n nor_o the_o cry_n of_o the_o people_n so_o the_o soul_n that_o by_o faith_n live_v in_o jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v carry_v above_o the_o noise_n and_o trouble_n of_o the_o world_n and_o shall_v enjoy_v peace_n in_o jesus_n christ_n let_v we_o therefore_o wait_v in_o the_o heavenly_a jerusalem_n for_o more_o of_o the_o spirit_n by_o faith_n this_o lesson_n will_v appear_v to_o be_v very_o necessary_a for_o the_o saint_n if_o we_o consider_v that_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n may_v be_v so_o quench_v in_o saint_n that_o they_o may_v not_o for_o the_o present_a be_v able_a to_o go_v into_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n as_o saint_n but_o as_o poor_a sinner_n and_o by_o the_o belief_n of_o this_o doctrine_n a_o saint_n do_v easy_o get_v out_o of_o temptation_n for_o he_o be_v teach_v of_o god_n in_o the_o gospel_n to_o come_v unto_o he_o as_o a_o sinner_n without_o work_n when_o he_o can_v come_v as_o a_o saint_n and_o in_o this_o way_n his_o joy_n with_o all_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n grace_n be_v restore_v unto_o he_o and_o when_o they_o be_v restore_v he_o do_v keep_v they_o by_o the_o rest_n upon_o god_n who_o save_v sinner_n by_o grace_n through_o faith_n and_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n peter_n when_o he_o exhort_v saint_n to_o grow_v in_o grace_n do_v add_v and_o in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 2_o pet._n 3.18_o by_o which_o he_o do_v seem_v to_o inform_v they_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o grow_v in_o grace_n unless_o there_o be_v a_o grow_a in_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o love_n of_o his_o father_n in_o he_o in_o the_o last_o place_n here_o be_v a_o foundation_n of_o salvation_n for_o all_o that_o have_v ear_n to_o hear_v and_o heart_n to_o entertain_v the_o report_n which_o you_o have_v hear_v of_o god_n grace_n which_o be_v manifest_v to_o sinner_n through_o faith_n let_v not_o any_o man_n go_v away_o with_o a_o heart_n of_o unbelief_n but_o the_o lord_n open_v your_o ear_n and_o heart_n as_o he_o do_v lydia_n that_o you_o may_v believe_v what_o be_v report_v for_o true_o if_o you_o believe_v what_o i_o have_v deliver_v you_o may_v go_v away_o rejoice_v and_o assure_v of_o god_n grace_n behold_v your_o name_n write_v in_o the_o book_n of_o life_n the_o true_a gospel_n believe_v will_v remove_v all_o objection_n against_o your_o peace_n and_o all_o doubt_n out_o of_o your_o spirit_n if_o as_o child_n of_o abraham_n you_o believe_v as_o he_o do_v salvation_n will_v lie_v down_o in_o your_o bosom_n and_o the_o true_a god_n in_o jesus_n christ_n will_v give_v you_o a_o answer_n to_o whatsoever_o you_o can_v object_n &_o bring_v against_o your_o own_o salvation_n and_o justification_n it_o be_v not_o the_o sight_n of_o sin_n that_o shall_v take_v away_o your_o comfort_n but_o you_o shall_v rejoice_v that_o jesus_n christ_n do_v die_v for_o sinner_n it_o be_v not_o the_o want_n of_o work_n that_o shall_v send_v you_o away_o without_o assurance_n or_o justification_n but_o you_o shall_v see_v that_o you_o have_v good_a right_n to_o lay_v hold_n upon_o jesus_n christ_n though_o you_o have_v no_o work_n because_o he_o justify_v none_o but_o those_o that_o have_v no_o work_n before_o justification_n the_o true_a god_n be_v not_o a_o justifier_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o righteous_a but_o of_o the_o ungodly_a god_n know_v that_o the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o proud_a flesh_n do_v strong_o persuade_v sinner_n to_o seek_v salvation_n in_o themselves_o and_o their_o own_o work_n the_o jailor_n question_n act_v 16._o what_o shall_v i_o do_v to_o be_v save_v and_o the_o ruler_n quaere_fw-la luke_n 18.18_o what_o shall_v i_o do_v to_o inherit_v eternal_a life_n be_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o every_o natural_a man_n who_o be_v persuade_v that_o there_o be_v a_o eternal_a life_n man_n think_v that_o as_o he_o become_v miserable_a by_o his_o evil_a work_n that_o so_o he_o must_v be_v make_v happy_a by_o his_o good_a work_n and_o therefore_o god_n have_v give_v his_o law_n which_o require_v perfection_n to_o bring_v down_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o flesh_n ad_fw-la domandam_fw-la superbiam_fw-la aug._n and_o confidence_n in_o our_o own_o work_n and_o discover_v his_o free_a favour_n to_o the_o worst_a of_o sinner_n in_o the_o gospel_n god_n have_v block_v and_o stop_v up_o all_o other_o way_n to_o life_n beside_o the_o way_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o christ_n and_o have_v leave_v this_o way_n open_a for_o the_o worst_a of_o sinner_n to_o turn_v in_o unto_o it_o for_o salvation_n so_o that_o as_o good_a work_n can_v save_v we_o without_o christ_n be_v but_o glitter_a and_o gild_a sin_n so_o evil_a work_n can_v prejudice_v the_o
salvation_n of_o he_o who_o come_v to_o jesus_n christ_n as_o david_n in_o the_o cave_n adullam_n 1_o sam._n 22.2_o entertain_v all_o such_o who_o be_v in_o distress_n and_o every_o one_o that_o be_v in_o debt_n and_o every_o one_o that_o be_v discontent_v and_o become_v a_o captain_n over_o they_o so_o jesus_n christ_n of_o who_o david_n be_v a_o type_n do_v entertain_v all_o distress_a conscience_n indebt_v sinner_n discontent_a malefactor_n and_o become_v the_o captain_n of_o their_o salvation_n heb._n 2._o he_o know_v how_o unwilling_a impurity_n be_v to_o come_v to_o he_o who_o be_v purity_n what_o enemy_n we_o be_v to_o our_o own_o salvation_n what_o fool_n we_o be_v to_o run_v to_o those_o who_o can_v help_v we_o like_o ephraim_n who_o when_o he_o see_v his_o sickness_n go_v to_o the_o assyrian_a who_o can_v not_o heal_v he_o hos_fw-la 5.13_o and_o therefore_o he_o publish_v proclamation_n of_o his_o father_n grace_n to_o poor_a helpless_a sinner_n and_o bring_v sinne-wounded_n miscreant_n out_o of_o the_o wilderness_n of_o sin_n and_o misery_n to_o the_o heavenly_a canaan_n of_o peace_n and_o holiness_n through_o faith_n in_o his_o name_n he_o see_v that_o we_o be_v ready_a to_o catch_v hold_n of_o the_o law_n and_o our_o own_o work_n like_v unto_o man_n who_o be_v ready_a to_o sink_v in_o the_o water_n who_o will_v get_v hold_n of_o rush_n or_o straw_n or_o any_o thing_n upon_o the_o surface_n of_o the_o water_n which_o can_v save_v they_o and_o therefore_o he_o reach_v forth_o his_o strong_a arm_n of_o salvation_n for_o to_o help_v we_o and_o bid_v we_o to_o hold_v fast_o by_o he_o and_o assure_v we_o of_o life_n and_o salvation_n he_o keep_v open_a house_n and_o invit_v all_o sort_n of_o sinner_n so_o lay_v hold_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o his_o father_n in_o he_o he_o beseech_v we_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o his_o father_n 1_o corinthian_n 5.20_o he_o assure_v sinner_n that_o whosoever_o will_v may_v drink_v of_o the_o water_n of_o life_n free_o rev._n 22.17_o he_o compare_v himself_o to_o a_o run_a river_n out_o of_o which_o every_o poor_a traveller_n may_v drink_v free_o no_o man_n demand_v or_o require_v any_o thing_n for_o what_o he_o take_v he_o do_v set_v captive_n sree_a not_o for_o price_n or_o reward_n isa_n 45.13_o not_o for_o their_o work_n though_o we_o have_v sell_v ourselves_o for_o nought_o yet_o he_o assure_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v redeem_v without_o money_n or_o price_n isa_n 52.3_o he_o have_v pay_v a_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o price_n or_o money_n for_o our_o redemption_n and_o assure_v we_o now_o in_o his_o word_n of_o truth_n that_o there_o be_v salvation_n for_o we_o without_o our_o merit_n by_o faith_n in_o he_o therefore_o let_v those_o who_o want_v joy_n and_o comfort_n come_v to_o the_o promise_n and_o take_v christ_n in_o a_o promise_n such_o who_o have_v be_v mislead_v and_o not_o set_v in_o the_o right_a way_n to_o salvation_n and_o justification_n let_v they_o be_v convince_v that_o this_o be_v the_o right_a way_n be_v assure_v of_o salvation_n by_o grace_n christ_n die_v not_o for_o the_o righteous_a but_o for_o the_o ungodly_a be_v persuade_v that_o jesus_n be_v not_o a_o physician_n for_o the_o whole_a but_o for_o the_o sick_a mat._n 9.12_o sin_n be_v the_o soul_n sickness_n thou_o be_v a_o sinner_n be_v sick_a and_o may_v come_v to_o christ_n not_o as_o one_o that_o be_v well_o but_o as_o one_o that_o be_v sick_a christ_n be_v a_o chirurgeon_n that_o be_v able_a to_o cure_v the_o great_a wound_n therefore_o he_o have_v set_v up_o his_o bill_n and_o bid_v all_o to_o come_v and_o he_o will_v reject_v none_o we_o may_v with_o the_o woman_n in_o the_o gospel_n spend_v all_o that_o we_o have_v upon_o other_o physician_n and_o be_v nothing_o profit_v there_o be_v health_n for_o we_o only_o by_o come_v to_o jesus_n christ_n therefore_o if_o other_o physician_n have_v be_v physician_n of_o no_o value_n while_o they_o have_v bid_v you_o seek_v justification_n and_o assurance_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o your_o own_o work_n and_o not_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n grace_n hear_v this_o day_n what_o the_o lord_n christ_n say_v to_o your_o soul_n he_o profess_v that_o he_o call_v not_o the_o righteous_a but_o sinner_n to_o repentance_n hear_v he_o hear_v i_o say_v and_o thy_o soul_n shall_v live_v isa_n 55.3_o i_o remember_v that_o some_o physician_n have_v be_v high_o commend_v that_o have_v be_v able_a to_o cure_v their_o patient_n speedy_o and_o safe_o and_o without_o any_o great_a torment_n now_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o most_o admirable_a physician_n in_o these_o three_o respect_n 1._o he_o can_v speedy_o cure_v and_o heal_v we_o whatsoever_o our_o wound_n be_v if_o there_o be_v but_o one_o wound_n and_o sore_n from_o the_o crown_n of_o the_o head_n to_o the_o sole_a of_o the_o soot_n if_o we_o be_v make_v up_o of_o nothing_o but_o sin_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v able_a to_o cure_v we_o speedy_o he_o be_v excellent_a in_o this_o respect_n touch_v he_o and_o the_o bloody_a issue_n of_o thy_o soul_n be_v immediate_o cure_v he_o can_v say_v to_o thou_o as_o once_o he_o say_v to_o zacheus_n this_o day_n salvation_n be_v come_v to_o thy_o soul_n if_o he_o lie_v the_o plaster_n of_o his_o father_n grace_n upon_o thy_o sinful_a soul_n thou_o shall_v be_v immediate_o cure_v second_o christ_n cure_v safe_o there_o be_v no_o danger_n in_o take_v that_o which_o christ_n prescribe_v if_o christ_n tell_v you_o that_o his_o father_n justify_v ungodly_a one_o and_o that_o he_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o sinner_n you_o may_v believe_v he_o and_o put_v your_o life_n in_o his_o hand_n he_o will_v not_o cozen_v and_o cheat_v as_o some_o mountebank_n that_o give_v that_o which_o kill_v when_o they_o confident_o promise_v health_n if_o christ_n promise_v to_o heal_v he_o will_v give_v that_o physic_n which_o shall_v effectual_o help_v we_o he_o will_v not_o give_v that_o unto_o we_o which_o shall_v hurt_v we_o if_o he_o have_v think_v the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n will_v have_v hurt_v man_n he_o will_v never_o have_v command_v the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n to_o have_v be_v preach_v if_o he_o have_v think_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n will_v only_o have_v open_v a_o door_n to_o libertinism_n and_o licentiousness_n he_o will_v not_o have_v give_v his_o apostle_n commission_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o every_o creature_n though_o man_n in_o their_o carnal_a apprehension_n think_v there_o be_v danger_n in_o the_o medicine_n of_o christ_n those_o who_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o he_o can_v assure_v you_o that_o he_o be_v a_o matchless_a physician_n there_o be_v no_o danger_n in_o that_o which_o he_o give_v there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o salvation_n but_o by_o believe_v without_o work_v use_v this_o physic_n of_o he_o apply_v this_o plaster_n to_o thy_o soul_n &_o thou_o need_v not_o to_o fear_v who_o he_o cure_v he_o cure_v with_o abundance_n of_o safety_n i_o dare_v assure_v thou_o that_o he_o will_v heal_v thou_o in_o the_o three_o place_n physician_n be_v commend_v that_o cure_n without_o torment_v their_o patient_n much_o and_o such_o a_o physician_n as_o jesus_n christ_n he_o comfort_v our_o heart_n with_o gospel_n cordial_n while_o he_o cure_v we_o there_o be_v sweet_a comfort_n in_o the_o heal_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n he_o so_o heal_v thy_o wound_n and_o disease_n that_o thou_o shall_v have_v delight_n and_o comfort_n while_o he_o heal_v thy_o soul_n and_o give_v a_o plaster_n to_o thy_o putrify_a rot_a spirit_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n do_v not_o prescribe_v a_o torment_a remedy_n that_o be_v worse_a than_o the_o disease_n but_o when_o christ_n heal_v he_o comfort_v he_o so_o cure_v that_o he_o ravish_v the_o soul_n with_o joy_n unspeakable_a and_o full_a of_o glory_n wherefore_o come_v to_o christ_n you_o who_o have_v spend_v all_o and_o suffer_v much_o and_o have_v lie_v under_o a_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n 20._o or_o 30._o year_n here_o be_v heal_v look_v to_o the_o physician_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n he_o will_v cure_v you_o speedy_o and_o safe_o and_o with_o delight_n to_o you_o in_o brief_a it_o be_v a_o easy_a and_o compendious_a way_n to_o heaven_n when_o god_n give_v you_o believe_a heart_n and_o yet_o the_o hard_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n to_o believe_v without_o he_o but_o when_o god_n enable_v we_o the_o work_n be_v easy_a when_o christ_n resolve_v to_o be_v the_o physician_n health_n quick_o will_v be_v give_v in_o some_o affirm_v that_o generation_n be_v in_o instanti_fw-la in_o a_o moment_n it_o be_v unquestionable_a concern_v spiritual_a regeneration_n by_o faith_n in_o christ_n therefore_o look_v up_o to_o the_o father_n and_o
the_o dark_a dungeon_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n be_v not_o able_a to_o behold_v the_o invisible_a thing_n of_o god_n grace_n which_o be_v not_o discover_v and_o make_v visible_a unto_o we_o until_o we_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n but_o in_o the_o 3_o place_n the_o holy_a spirit_n speak_v of_o natural_a man_n without_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o inform_v we_o that_o they_o be_v darken_v and_o have_v their_o seat_n in_o darkness_n but_o they_o love_v darkness_n they_o be_v please_v with_o their_o present_a state_n and_o condition_n of_o darkness_n they_o be_v unwilling_a to_o have_v any_o light_n break_v forth_o upon_o they_o so_o our_o saviour_n say_v john_n 3.19_o this_o be_v the_o condemnation_n that_o light_n be_v come_v into_o the_o world_n but_o man_n love_v darkness_n they_o love_v unbelief_n and_o ignorance_n they_o have_v rather_o be_v the_o devil_n prisoner_n in_o dungeon_n of_o darkness_n then_o enjoy_v their_o liberty_n in_o christ_n marvellous_a light_n they_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v unable_a to_o make_v themselves_o happy_a in_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v in_o love_n with_o their_o own_o unhappiness_n they_o will_v not_o come_v to_o christ_n that_o they_o may_v have_v life_n they_o be_v unwilling_a that_o christ_n shall_v reign_v over_o they_o though_o he_o do_v offer_v salvation_n unto_o they_o they_o say_v unto_o god_n depart_v from_o we_o for_o we_o will_v not_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o thy_o way_n job_n 21.14_o like_o the_o gadarens_n they_o do_v desire_n jesus_n to_o depart_v out_o of_o their_o coast_n they_o be_v the_o slave_n of_o sin_n and_o free_a from_o righteousness_n rom._n 6.20_o when_o they_o be_v disobedient_a to_o the_o command_n of_o righteousness_n they_o do_v account_v it_o their_o liberty_n and_o freedom_n as_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n be_v liberty_n to_o a_o saint_n cvi_fw-la servire_fw-la regnare_fw-la est_fw-la aug._n so_o the_o service_n of_o sin_n be_v account_v liberty_n by_o a_o carnal_a man_n they_o be_v like_o the_o servant_n that_o be_v to_o be_v bore_v through_o the_o ear_n upon_o his_o profession_n that_o he_o love_v his_o master_n and_o will_v not_o go_v out_o free_a exod._n 21.5_o this_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o every_o man_n out_o of_o christ_n he_o profess_v that_o he_o love_v his_o master_n he_o love_v the_o devil_n &_o the_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n be_v sweet_a and_o please_a to_o he_o he_o have_v rather_o live_v as_o a_o swine_n and_o wallow_v in_o the_o filth_n and_o mire_n of_o sin_n then_o taste_v of_o those_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n which_o be_v at_o god_n right_a hand_n he_o have_v rather_o do_v the_o devil_n drudgery_n then_o enjoy_v that_o perfect_a freedom_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v purchase_v for_o the_o saint_n it_o be_v against_o his_o heart_n and_o the_o whole_a bent_n frame_n stream_n strength_n and_o current_n of_o his_o spirit_n to_o be_v desire_v entreat_v and_o beseech_v to_o give_v entertainment_n to_o christ_n he_o be_v rather_o content_v to_o live_v as_o a_o slave_n with_o satan_n then_o to_o rule_v as_o a_o king_n with_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o evil_a tree_n and_o can_v bring_v forth_o fruit_n to_o make_v himself_o good_a homo_fw-la extra_fw-la christume_v mala_fw-la arbour_n hier._n as_o a_o evil_a tree_n can_v bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n to_o make_v itself_o good_a so_o a_o evil_a man_n be_v a_o evil_a tree_n all_o his_o thought_n word_n and_o action_n be_v evil_a fruit_n by_o which_o he_o can_v make_v himself_o good_a he_o can_v therefore_o of_o himself_o bring_v forth_o the_o good_a fruit_n of_o faith_n again_o the_o scripture_n rise_v high_a in_o spiritual_a expression_n to_o set_v forth_o unto_o we_o the_o sad_a and_o woeful_a condition_n of_o a_o unbelieving_a man_n he_o be_v not_o only_o a_o lover_n of_o darkness_n and_o seat_v in_o darkness_n but_o he_o be_v darkness_n itself_o in_o the_o abstract_n the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o the_o ephesian_n before_o their_o conversion_n say_v ephes_n 5.8_o you_o be_v sometime_o darkness_n consonant_a to_o which_o word_n be_v that_o speech_n of_o john_n john_n 1.5_o the_o light_n shine_v in_o darkness_n that_o be_v in_o the_o dark_a heart_n of_o unbelieve_a man_n but_o the_o darkness_n comprehend_v it_o not_o there_o do_v lie_v more_o in_o this_o expression_n then_o in_o the_o former_a it_o be_v more_o to_o be_v darkness_n then_o to_o be_v darken_v now_o we_o be_v not_o only_o darken_v in_o our_o understanding_n but_o our_o understanding_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o darkness_n man_n without_o christ_n may_v think_v that_o they_o have_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o knowledge_n &_o wisdom_n but_o true_o the_o holy_a ghost_n tell_v we_o that_o all_o their_o light_n and_o understanding_n be_v nothing_o but_o darkness_n there_o be_v as_o much_o contrariety_n between_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o natural_a man_n as_o there_o be_v between_o light_n and_o darkness_n by_o reason_n of_o which_o the_o natural_a mancannot_v of_o himselfeobtaine_v the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n rom._n 8.7_o the_o carnal_a mind_n be_v enmity_n against_o god_n for_o it_o be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n neither_o can_v be_v the_o apostle_n do_v not_o only_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o subject_a but_o he_o say_v that_o it_o can_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o make_v it_o a_o thing_n impossible_a according_a to_o that_o which_o he_o himself_o deliver_v 1_o cor._n 2.14_o the_o natural_a man_n receive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n to_o he_o the_o word_n be_v very_o emphatical_a in_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o man_n that_o have_v a_o soul_n look_v upon_o he_o in_o his_o best_a part_n in_o his_o ration_n all_o soul_n which_o he_o have_v as_o a_o man_n and_o in_o that_o and_o by_o that_o he_o can_v receive_v the_o thing_n of_o god_n look_v upon_o the_o rational_a man_n with_o his_o morality_n with_o humane_a learning_n art_n &_o science_n with_o his_o literal_a knowledge_n of_o the_o law_n &_o gospel_n look_v upon_o he_o as_o he_o be_v sublimate_v in_o his_o intellectual_n and_o as_o he_o have_v make_v the_o high_a improvement_n of_o his_o learning_n part_n gift_n and_o endowment_n as_o he_o be_v the_o world_n delight_n for_o his_o worldly_a wisdom_n as_o he_o be_v admire_v by_o man_n for_o his_o prudence_n and_o eloquence_n with_o all_o this_o he_o be_v blind_a to_o the_o all-seeing_a eye_n of_o god_n and_o can_v receive_v or_o apprehend_v the_o glorious_a thing_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o jesus_n christ_n he_o be_v a_o fool_n with_o his_o wisdom_n &_o a_o ignorant_a man_n with_o his_o learning_n a_o wretched_a sinner_n with_o all_o his_o good_a work_n &_o moral_a virtue_n and_o no_o more_o able_a to_o open_v the_o blind_a eye_n of_o his_o soul_n that_o he_o may_v see_v the_o sun_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o shine_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o saint_n then_o a_o man_n who_o be_v bear_v blind_a be_v able_a to_o give_v himself_o fight_v and_o bodily_a eye_n to_o hehold_v the_o sun_n which_o shine_v in_o the_o world_n he_o be_v not_o able_a by_o the_o acuteness_n of_o his_o reason_n the_o sharpness_n of_o his_o understanding_n nor_o the_o largeness_n of_o his_o part_n gift_n endowment_n natural_a or_o acquire_v to_o attain_v unto_o the_o save_a knowledge_n of_o thing_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o they_o be_v mere_a foolishness_n unto_o he_o so_o that_o by_o this_o consideration_n it_o will_v be_v evident_a that_o if_o we_o look_v on_o say_v as_o it_o be_v a_o light_n in_o the_o understanding_n that_o then_o a_o man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o bring_v this_o light_n into_o his_o own_o understanding_n but_o whatsoever_o be_v in_o his_o understanding_n oppose_v the_o glorious_a light_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v impossible_a upon_o this_o account_n for_o a_o man_n to_o believe_v of_o himself_o but_o i●_n the_o second_o place_n if_o we_o look_v on_o faith_n not_o only_o as_o it_o be_v the_o light_n of_o god_n in_o the_o understanding_n but_o if_o we_o look_v on_o it_o as_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o will_n so_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o we_o believe_v not_o of_o ourselves_o and_o that_o no_o man_n ever_o in_o his_o own_o power_n and_o strength_n or_o improvement_n of_o his_o free_a will_n be_v ever_o able_a to_o believe_v what_o god_n have_v report_v concern_v his_o own_o grace_n in_o his_o son_n jesus_n for_o as_o a_o man_n be_v darkness_n in_o his_o understanding_n so_o he_o be_v nothing_o but_o rebellion_n in_o his_o will_n as_o the_o darkness_n in_o his_o understanding_n oppose_v the_o light_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o beam_n of_o gospell-truth_n so_o likewise_o the_o strength_n force_n &_o prevalency_n
grace_n of_o god_n can_v not_o keep_v that_o salvation_n which_o he_o receive_v how_o shall_v he_o be_v able_a without_o grace_n to_o regain_v that_o salvation_n which_o he_o have_v lose_v cum_fw-la igitur_fw-la sine_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la salutem_fw-la non_fw-la posset_n custodire_fw-la quam_fw-la accepit_fw-la quomodo_fw-la sine_fw-la gratiâ_fw-la dei_fw-la potest_fw-la reparare_fw-la quam_fw-la perdidit_fw-la aug._n in_o epist_n second_o it_o may_v be_v for_o the_o convince_a of_o man_n of_o their_o disability_n to_o will_v their_o own_o justification_n and_o salvation_n what_o god_n account_v wisdom_n that_o when_o man_n look_v on_o it_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o reason_n he_o acccount_v it_o nothing_o but_o folly_n and_o madness_n how_o can_v a_o man_n be_v desirous_a of_o christ_n who_o apprehend_v that_o the_o thing_n of_o christ_n be_v nothing_o but_o foolishness_n a_o profane_a pope_n sport_v himself_o and_o rejoice_v in_o the_o great_a riches_n he_o have_v get_v by_o profess_v the_o gospel_n in_o a_o carnal_a way_n utter_v these_o word_n what_o great_a riches_n have_v we_o get_v to_o ourselves_o by_o this_o fable_n of_o jesus_n christ_n quantus_fw-la divitias_fw-la lucrati_fw-la sumus_fw-la ex_fw-la hac_fw-la fabulâ_fw-la christi_fw-la so_o man_n that_o be_v not_o enlighten_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n to_o behold_v the_o world_n of_o truth_n do_v conalve_v the_o truth_n which_o man_n preach_v concern_v christ_n be_v mere_a fancy_n fable_n madness_n and_o that_o foolishness_n and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n at_o all_o in_o which_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n i_o will_v instance_n but_o in_o one_o or_o two_o particular_n to_o show_v you_o how_o carnal_a reason_n oppose_v grace_n grace_n tell_v we_o that_o god_n will_v have_v mercy_n on_o who_o he_o will_v have_v mercy_n and_o who_o he_o will_v he_o harden_v rom._n 9.18_o consider_v how_o carnal_a reason_n oppose_v this_o truth_n of_o god_n suppose_v say_v carnal_a reason_n that_o a_o king_n will_v hate_v some_o of_o his_o subject_n because_o he_o will_v hate_v they_o and_o love_v other_o because_o he_o will_v love_v they_o and_o shall_v give_v no_o other_o reason_n of_o his_o action_n but_o his_o own_o will_n be_v not_o such_o a_o king_n more_o fit_a to_o live_v among_o beast_n then_o to_o reign_v over_o man_n and_o shall_v we_o then_o think_v that_o the_o wise_a god_n do_v love_n and_o elect_v some_o because_o he_o will_v love_v they_o and_o hate_n and_o reprobate_v other_o because_o he_o will_v hate_v they_o thus_o carnal_a man_n measure_v the_o action_n of_o god_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o their_o own_o reason_n they_o see_v nothing_o but_o folly_n and_o madness_n in_o that_o by_o which_o god_n discover_v his_o great_a wisdom_n to_o those_o that_o be_v enlighten_v to_o behold_v the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n second_o god_n in_o christ_n do_v present_v himself_o as_o have_v a_o sufficiency_n of_o grace_n for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o great_a of_o sinner_n without_o work_n but_o how_o do_v carnal_a reason_n strong_o and_o vigorous_o fight_v against_o god_n goodness_n conclude_v that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n in_o this_o doctrine_n that_o the_o law_n and_o good_a work_n will_v presen_o be_v destroy_v a_o natural_a man_n can_v believe_v that_o god_n be_v so_o gracious_a as_o gospel-minister_n will_v persuade_v the_o world_n that_o he_o be_v as_o the_o unbelieve_a lord_n when_o the_o prophet_n tell_v he_o of_o the_o great_a plenty_n in_o samaria_n say_v if_o god_n shall_v open_v window_n in_o heaven_n can_v this_o this_o thing_n be_v 1_o king_n 7._o so_o a_o natural_a man_n when_o christ_n be_v offer_v to_o sinner_n without_o any_o work_n unless_o god_n give_v grace_n to_o believe_v he_o be_v ready_a to_o say_v if_o the_o window_n of_o heaven_n be_v open_v and_o all_o the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n in_o heaven_n shall_v come_v down_o upon_o we_o if_o god_n shall_v let_v out_o all_o the_o bowel_n of_o his_o pity_n and_o compassion_n to_o poor_a sinner_n it_o can_v be_v so_o as_o you_o say_v and_o speak_v concern_v free_a grace_n to_o sinner_n and_o ungodly_a one_o so_o that_o if_o a_o natural_a man_n shall_v do_v nothing_o but_o hear_v sermon_n and_o although_o angel_n or_o christ_n himself_o shall_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o preach_v unto_o he_o he_o will_v be_v as_o able_a of_o himself_o to_o keep_v the_o whole_a law_n for_o justification_n as_o to_o believe_v true_o and_o save_o in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o some_o will_v say_v that_o if_o it_o be_v thus_o that_o a_o man_n may_v as_o easy_o in_o his_o own_o strength_n keep_v the_o law_n as_o believe_v the_o gospel_n why_o do_v not_o god_n then_o rather_o enable_v we_o to_o keep_v the_o law_n that_o we_o may_v be_v save_v then_o bid_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o god_n save_v we_o by_o enable_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o gospel_n and_o not_o by_o enable_v we_o to_o keep_v the_o law_n for_o justification_n because_o god_n will_v have_v the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o our_o salvation_n god_n will_v not_o save_v we_o in_o a_o way_n of_o work_v but_o in_o a_o way_n of_o believe_a that_o all_o the_o glory_n may_v be_v give_v to_o he_o the_o apostle_n give_v this_o as_o a_o reason_n why_o it_o be_v by_o faith_n and_o not_o by_o work_n that_o no_o man_n may_v boast_v ver_fw-la 9_o not_o of_o work_n lest_o any_o man_n shall_v boast_v by_o which_o argument_n he_o prove_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n rom._n 4.2_o if_o abraham_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n say_v he_o he_o have_v whereof_o to_o glory_v as_o we_o may_v observe_v it_o in_o some_o people_n who_o be_v build_v upon_o legal_a principle_n like_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi luke_n 18.11_o they_o be_v boast_v that_o they_o be_v not_o as_o other_o man_n as_o though_o their_o good_a work_n have_v make_v the_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o other_o this_o frame_n of_o spirit_n do_v rob_v god_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n who_o will_v not_o that_o any_o flesh_n shall_v glory_v in_o his_o presence_n but_o that_o he_o that_o glori_v shall_v glory_v in_o the_o lord_n 1_o cor._n 1.29.3_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n in_o the_o word_n make_v flesh_n and_o not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o second_o some_o will_v object_v why_o do_v god_n take_v this_o pain_n with_o man_n in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n if_o they_o be_v able_a to_o do_v no_o more_o to_o their_o own_o conversion_n than_o a_o dead_a man_n to_o his_o own_o resurrection_n to_o this_o objection_n i_o have_v already_o give_v a_o answer_n yet_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o add_v this_o to_o what_o have_v be_v already_o speak_v for_o the_o full_a satisfaction_n of_o those_o that_o be_v weak_a though_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v nothing_o of_o ourselves_o yet_o god_n entreat_v exhort_v and_o beseech_v we_o to_o be_v reconcile_v to_o he_o in_o jesus_n christ_n because_o in_o exhort_v entreat_v and_o beseech_v of_o we_o to_o believe_v he_o put_v forth_o his_o power_n and_o his_o own_o strength_n to_o enable_v we_o to_o believe_v while_o paul_n exhort_v the_o gaoler_n to_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n that_o he_o may_v be_v save_v god_n enable_v the_o gaoler_n to_o believe_v life_n and_o power_n be_v convey_v to_o the_o soul_n in_o gospel_n command_v and_o exhortation_n when_o christ_n raise_v the_o son_n of_o the_o widow_n of_o naim_n to_o life_n luke_n 7.14_o he_o speak_v to_o he_o young_a man_n i_o say_v to_o thou_o arise_z no_o man_n who_o have_v not_o lose_v his_o reason_n will_v conclude_v from_o hence_o that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o young_a man_n that_o be_v dead_a by_o which_o he_o be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a but_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n who_o do_v bid_v he_o arise_v so_o though_o god_n speak_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n to_o those_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o sin_n and_o trespass_n and_o bid_v they_o arise_v from_o the_o dead_a that_o he_o may_v give_v they_o light_n yet_o we_o can_v conclude_v from_o thence_o that_o it_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o man_n by_o which_o they_o do_v believe_v but_o it_o be_v by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n convey_v in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n christ_n command_v lazarus_n to_o come_v forth_o but_o he_o come_v not_o forth_o in_o his_o own_o strength_n but_o in_o the_o power_n and_o strength_n of_o he_o that_o command_v he_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n so_o we_o command_v man_n to_o come_v forth_o out_o of_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n but_o they_o come_v not_o forth_o in_o their_o own_o strength_n but_o in_o the_o power_n and_o
strength_n of_o that_o spirit_n that_o command_v they_o from_o the_o grave_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o land_n of_o the_o live_n while_o ezekiel_n prophesy_v over_o the_o dead_a bone_n breath_n come_v into_o they_o and_o they_o live_v ezek._n 37.10_o so_o while_o the_o prophet_n of_o the_o lord_n do_v preach_v over_o their_o sinful_a impenitent_a hearer_n who_o be_v like_o the_o prophet_n dry_a bone_n the_o breath_n of_o heaven_n the_o spirit_n of_o the_o most_o high_a in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n enter_v in_o into_o they_o and_o not_o by_o work_v but_o believe_v they_o be_v make_v new_a creature_n and_o see_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n in_o the_o next_o place_n you_o see_v faith_n be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o it_o be_v not_o in_o any_o thing_n in_o man_n or_o in_o man_n wisdom_n that_o man_n be_v enable_v to_o believe_v what_o be_v report_v concern_v god_n grace_n in_o jesus_n christ_n therefore_o this_o may_v convince_v we_o that_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v of_o ourselves_o be_v a_o false_a faith_n and_o not_o the_o true_a justify_v faith_n of_o the_o saint_n the_o good_a fruit_n of_o faith_n can_v grow_v out_o of_o a_o wicked_a heart_n and_o the_o heart_n of_o a_o man_n natural_o be_v wickedness_n and_o every_o imagination_n of_o the_o thought_n of_o his_o heart_n be_v vanity_n and_o only_o evil_a continual_o gen._n 6.5_o psalm_n 94.11_o when_o god_n look_v down_o from_o heaven_n upon_o the_o child_n of_o the_o first_o adam_n he_o see_v that_o there_o be_v not_o any_o that_o do_v understand_v and_o seek_v god_n they_o be_v all_o go_v aside_o they_o be_v all_o become_v filthy_a there_o be_v none_o that_o do_v good_a no_o not_o one_o psal_n 14.2.3_o and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n die_v for_o we_o when_o we_o be_v enemy_n unto_o he_o and_o without_o strength_n to_o do_v any_o thing_n for_o our_o own_o salvation_n rom._n 5.6_o that_o faith_n therefore_o which_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n be_v not_o that_o true_a faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v only_o wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o gospel_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n where_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o saint_n be_v justify_v by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o our_o god_n 1_o cor._n 6.11_o therefore_o if_o thy_o faith_n be_v a_o work_n or_o persuasion_n of_o thy_o own_o spirit_n if_o it_o be_v frame_v and_o hammer_v by_o thyself_o upon_o the_o anvil_n of_o thy_o own_o spirit_n it_o be_v a_o counterfeit_a persuasion_n and_o will_v not_o be_v able_a to_o advantage_v thou_o in_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o we_o read_v in_o the_o prophet_n jeremiah_n of_o the_o vision_n of_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n and_o the_o vision_n of_o god_n so_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a faith_n there_o be_v the_o faith_n or_o persuasion_n of_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n and_o a_o persuasion_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o as_o the_o vision_n of_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n be_v false_a dream_n lie_n and_o deceit_n and_o be_v just_o reprehend_v by_o the_o prophet_n jerem._n 23.26_o so_o the_o persuasion_n of_o a_o man_n own_o heart_n they_o be_v false_a dream_n and_o lie_a persuasion_n we_o be_v to_o give_v no_o credit_n to_o they_o as_o we_o shall_v not_o believe_v a_o common_a liar_n so_o we_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v the_o persuasion_n of_o our_o own_o heart_n the_o same_o prophet_n in_o the_o 28._o ver_fw-la compare_v lie_v prophecy_n to_o chaff_n and_o the_o prophecy_n of_o truth_n to_o wheat_n what_o say_v he_o be_v the_o chaff_n to_o the_o wheat_n so_o true_a faith_n be_v like_a unto_o wheat_n and_o faith_n of_o ourselves_o be_v like_a unto_o chaff_n as_o the_o wind_n drive_v away_o the_o chaff_n psalm_n 1.4_o so_o the_o blast_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o the_o wind_n of_o temptation_n will_v blow_v away_o the_o chaff_n of_o a_o false_a faith_n while_o true_a faith_n shall_v be_v preserve_v by_o god_n and_o we_o through_o it_o shall_v be_v preserve_v unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n wherefore_o brethren_n we_o be_v to_o try_v whether_o or_o no_o we_o do_v true_o believe_v examine_v yourselves_o say_v the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 13.5_o whether_o you_o be_v in_o the_o faith_n as_o we_o have_v a_o touchstone_n to_o try_v gold_n so_o god_n have_v leave_v a_o spiritual_a touchstone_n by_o which_o true_a faith_n may_v be_v try_v as_o there_o be_v counterfeit_a piece_n of_o gold_n which_o can_v be_v hardly_o distinguish_v from_o true_a gold_n until_o they_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o touchstone_n so_o there_o be_v a_o counterfeit_a faith_n which_o can_v hardly_o be_v distinguish_v from_o true_a faith_n until_o it_o be_v bring_v unto_o the_o spiritual_a touchstone_n therefore_o it_o will_v be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o every_o one_o of_o you_o to_o try_v what_o faith_n you_o have_v it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o be_v persuade_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o that_o christ_n be_v you_o and_o that_o your_o name_n be_v write_v in_o heaven_n alas_o there_o be_v false_a persuasion_n as_o well_o as_o true_a there_o be_v multitude_n of_o libertine_n who_o turn_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o wantonness_n and_o make_v their_o belly_n their_o god_n and_o mind_n earthly_a thing_n phil._n 3._o and_o yet_o have_v strong_a persuasion_n that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n there_o be_v pharisees_n who_o be_v persuade_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o pharisee_n have_v a_o assurance_n and_o give_v god_n thanks_n for_o it_o too_o luke_n 18.11_o god_n i_o thank_v thou_o i_o be_o not_o as_o other_o man_n be_v and_o yet_o he_o be_v but_o a_o hypocrite_n all_o the_o while_n delude_v with_o the_o proud_a conceit_n of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n the_o unbelieve_a jew_n profess_v with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o boldness_n and_o confidence_n that_o god_n be_v their_o father_n john_n 8.41_o we_o have_v one_o father_n even_o god_n and_o yet_o our_o saviour_n tell_v they_o plain_o that_o though_o they_o have_v these_o strong_a persuasion_n that_o god_n be_v their_o father_n yet_o in_o truth_n the_o devil_n be_v their_o father_n you_o be_v say_v he_o vers_n 44._o of_o your_o father_n the_o devil_n a_o man_n may_v be_v persuade_v that_o christ_n will_v save_v he_o and_o go_v to_o hell_n and_o be_v damn_v with_o that_o persuasion_n we_o see_v by_o experience_n that_o many_o apostate_n who_o have_v make_v a_o profession_n of_o christ_n &_o have_v have_v strong_a persuasion_n of_o the_o love_n of_o god_n have_v fall_v from_o the_o gospel_n to_o profaneness_n arminianism_n and_o diabolical_a familisme_n our_o bless_a emanuel_n do_v plain_o prove_v this_o truth_n unto_o we_o by_o acquaint_v we_o with_o some_o who_o when_o they_o shall_v be_v bring_v before_o his_o judgement-seate_n shall_v be_v confident_a of_o their_o interest_n in_o he_o who_o nevertheless_o he_o will_v not_o own_v to_o be_v his_o matth._n 7.21_o 22._o not_o every_o on_o that_o say_v lord_n lord_n shall_v enter_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n but_o he_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o my_o father_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n many_o shall_v say_v unto_o i_o in_o that_o day_n lord_n lord_n have_v we_o not_o prophesy_v in_o thy_o name_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n have_v cast_v out_o devil_n and_o in_o thy_o name_n do_v many_o wonderful_a work_n yet_o you_o see_v what_o christ_n will_v profess_v unto_o they_o i_o never_o know_v you_o depart_v from_o i_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n as_o if_o he_o have_v say_v it_o be_v true_a you_o have_v a_o strong_a persuasion_n that_o you_o shall_v be_v heir_n in_o my_o kingdom_n it_o be_v true_a you_o think_v that_o you_o shall_v be_v save_v if_o any_o in_o the_o world_n be_v save_v but_o i_o tell_v you_o for_o all_o that_o i_o know_v you_o not_o depart_v you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n wherefore_o it_o concern_v all_o man_n to_o know_v whether_o their_o faith_n be_v a_o right_a faith_n self-ish_a faith_n be_v no_o right_a faith_n if_o it_o arise_v from_o no_o high_a a_o fountain_n than_o our_o own_o natural_a reason_n wisdom_n and_o understanding_n our_o faith_n be_v from_o ourselves_o and_o we_o may_v carry_v it_o to_o hell_n with_o we_o and_o find_v as_o good_a faith_n there_o in_o the_o devil_n as_o this_o be_v though_o this_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v concern_v the_o trial_n of_o faith_n do_v chief_o concern_v such_o who_o be_v deceive_v with_o a_o false_a faith_n of_o their_o own_o make_n yet_o it_o will_v be_v very_o advantageous_a for_o the_o true_a saint_n likewise_o to_o try_v their_o faith_n wherefore_o before_o i_o press_v this_o far_a upon_o such_o who_o be_v under_o a_o spirit_n of_o delusion_n i_o shall_v speak_v a_o word_n unto_o the_o saint_n unto_o
this_o purpose_n consider_v that_o that_o man_n who_o have_v true_a faith_n may_v likewise_o have_v much_o false_a faith_n there_o may_v be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o dead_a faith_n in_o he_o who_o have_v a_o live_a faith_n where_o there_o be_v true_a gold_n there_o may_v be_v much_o dross_n and_o in_o that_o professor_n in_o who_o there_o be_v the_o golden_a faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n there_o may_v be_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o drossy_a faith_n which_o be_v nothing_o worth_a a_o christian_a have_v two_o contrary_a nature_n in_o he_o he_o have_v flesh_n as_o well_o as_o spirit_n and_o as_o there_o be_v persuasion_n in_o he_o flow_v from_o the_o spirit_n so_o there_o may_v be_v persuasion_n flow_v from_o the_o flesh_n saint_n sometime_o when_o they_o be_v in_o a_o lukewarm_a and_o backslide_n condition_n be_v apt_a to_o please_v and_o content_v themselves_o with_o the_o working_n and_o persuasion_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n and_o they_o may_v find_v that_o much_o of_o their_o joy_n and_o comfort_n do_v not_o proceed_v from_o true_a faith_n wrought_v by_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n but_o from_o the_o lie_a cheat_a counterfeit_n work_v and_o operation_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n will_v you_o know_v one_o principal_a ground_n and_o reason_n why_o some_o true_a saint_n be_v so_o unfruitful_a deadhearted_n formal_a and_o lukewarm_a in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o be_v because_o the_o devil_n cheat_v they_o with_o the_o working_n and_o persuasion_n of_o their_o own_o spirit_n when_o god_n persuade_v the_o heart_n of_o his_o love_n our_o heart_n be_v inflame_v with_o a_o holy_a love_n to_o god_n and_o be_v willing_a to_o do_v or_o suffer_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n but_o when_o we_o content_v ourselves_o with_o the_o work_n of_o our_o own_o spirit_n there_o be_v idleness_n sloth_n neglect_v of_o christian_a duty_n coldness_n formality_n and_o lukewarmness_n so_o that_o there_o be_v little_a difference_n between_o we_o &_o other_o again_o it_o concern_v you_o all_o to_o try_v your_o persuasion_n for_o if_o any_o of_o you_o cozen_v and_o cheat_v yourselves_o with_o the_o persuasion_n of_o your_o own_o spirit_n the_o time_n will_v come_v that_o you_o who_o kindle_v these_o spark_n and_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o your_o own_o fire_n and_o in_o the_o spark_n that_o you_o have_v kindle_v this_o shall_v you_o receive_v from_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n you_o shall_v lie_v down_o in_o sorrow_n isa_n 50.11_o when_o you_o expect_v heaven_n you_o will_v be_v cast_v down_o to_o hell_n when_o you_o shall_v be_v confident_a that_o christ_n be_v you_o and_o shall_v be_v ready_a to_o plead_v the_o goodness_n of_o your_o cause_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o you_o be_v deceive_v by_o the_o false_a persuasion_n and_o working_n of_o your_o own_o humane_a spirit_n a_o faith_n of_o yourselves_o by_o which_o you_o have_v be_v persuade_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o you_o have_v receive_v by_o the_o relation_n of_o thing_n to_o the_o ear_n will_v not_o save_v you_o but_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n give_v a_o heavenly_a revelation_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o heart_n therefore_o try_v whether_o your_o faith_n be_v from_o your_o own_o humane_a spirit_n and_o natural_a understanding_n or_o whether_o it_o proceed_v from_o the_o power_n and_o spirit_n of_o the_o most_o high_a god_n mighty_o work_v in_o you_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o your_o soul_n but_o you_o will_v say_v how_o shall_v we_o be_v resolve_v in_o our_o spirit_n that_o our_o faith_n have_v not_o proceed_v from_o our_o own_o spirit_n but_o that_o it_o be_v a_o work_n of_o god_n in_o we_o 1._o when_o god_n work_v faith_n he_o give_v a_o evident_a light_n by_o which_o we_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o thus_o the_o faithful_a be_v in_o the_o first_o place_n assure_v of_o salvation_n in_o believe_v the_o just_a do_v live_v by_o faith_n heb._n 2.4_o and_o have_v his_o life_n and_o righteousness_n by_o faith_n if_o any_o man_n be_v in_o christ_n he_o be_v a_o new_a creature_n 2_o cor._n 5.17_o the_o special_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o soul_n do_v make_v a_o man_n a_o new_a creature_n and_o by_o faith_n the_o new_a creation_n in_o we_o be_v discover_v unto_o we_o and_o therefore_o christ_n be_v say_v to_o be_v form_v in_o we_o by_o faith_n gal._n 4.19_o so_o many_o as_o receive_v he_o by_o faith_n be_v bear_v not_o of_o flesh_n nor_o of_o the_o will_n of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n and_o have_v power_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n 1_o john_n 12_o 13._o by_o faith_n we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n gal._n 3.26_o and_o know_v that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n 1_o john_n 5.10_o he_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v the_o witness_n in_o himself_o by_o which_o word_n it_o appear_v how_o true_a faith_n differ_v from_o a_o waver_a opinion_n unde_fw-la apparet_fw-la quantum_fw-la differat_fw-la à_fw-la fide_fw-la fluxa_fw-la opinio_fw-la marlor_n it_o be_v the_o office_n of_o faith_n to_o bear_v witness_n to_o the_o certainty_n of_o our_o salvation_n and_o to_o give_v in_o a_o testimony_n of_o our_o happiness_n by_o christ_n jesus_n the_o blood_n of_o christ_n do_v purge_v the_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n heb._n 9.14_o by_o faith_n we_o drink_v this_o blood_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n john_n 6.53_o and_o look_v upon_o he_o who_o be_v invisible_a to_o the_o eye_n of_o reason_n by_o this_o eye_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o evidence_n of_o thing_n not_o see_v heb._n 11.1_o christ_n be_v set_v forth_o as_o a_o propitiation_n and_o object_n of_o our_o justification_n by_o the_o father_n rom._n 3.25_o and_o by_o faith_n we_o look_v upon_o he_o who_o be_v set_v forth_o unto_o we_o to_o be_v look_v upon_o it_o be_v life_n eternal_a to_o know_v the_o only_a true_a god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n who_o he_o have_v send_v john_n 17.3_o and_o true_a faith_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n christ_n fides_n quid_fw-la aliud_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la vera_fw-la de_fw-la deo_fw-la cognitio_fw-la cyr._n he_o that_o believe_v on_o the_o son_n have_v everlasting_a life_n and_o he_o that_o believe_v not_o shall_v not_o see_v life_n john_n 3.36_o in_o which_o word_n our_o saviour_n do_v seem_v to_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o a_o believer_n and_o a_o unbeliever_n the_o unbelieving_a man_n see_v not_o eternal_a life_n but_o the_o believe_a man_n see_v eternal_a life_n and_o have_v eternal_a life_n abide_v in_o he_o by_o which_o he_o know_v that_o he_o be_v free_v from_o the_o death_n of_o sin_n and_o from_o the_o temporal_a and_o eternal_a death_n for_o sin_n and_o shall_v not_o come_v into_o condemnation_n for_o when_o a_o man_n true_o believe_v heaven_n be_v open_v unto_o he_o and_o he_o have_v a_o spiritual_a discovery_n of_o christ_n make_v unto_o his_o soul_n but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o a_o man_n who_o have_v a_o persuasion_n form_v in_o himself_o by_o himself_o as_o john_n say_v that_o what_o he_o have_v see_v he_o declare_v unto_o they_o 1_o john_n 1._o so_o every_o spiritual_a man_n may_v say_v that_o he_o have_v see_v jesus_n christ_n with_o stephen_n by_o faith_n he_o see_v god_n and_o his_o son_n jesus_n stand_v on_o his_o right_a hand_n christ_n be_v so_o perfect_o present_v to_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o believer_n do_v by_o faith_n look_v upon_o a_o crucify_a christ_n as_o though_o he_o be_v present_a before_o he_o gal._n 3._o the_o apostle_n to_o prove_v the_o effectual_a call_n &_o justification_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o do_v affirm_v that_o the_o gospel_n come_v unto_o they_o in_o much_o assurance_n 2_o thes_n 1.5_o inquire_v now_o in_o thy_o own_o spirit_n whether_o thy_o faith_n be_v such_o a_o faith_n as_o this_o which_o the_o scripture_n do_v call_v the_o unfeigned_a faith_n of_o the_o elect_a and_o if_o it_o be_v such_o a_o faith_n it_o be_v not_o of_o thyself_o but_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n 2_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v not_o in_o word_n but_o in_o power_n thou_o that_o do_v true_o believe_v haste_n find_v the_o word_n of_o salvation_n to_o come_v unto_o thou_o with_o a_o mighty_a power_n this_o be_v a_o evidence_n to_o paul_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o because_o the_o word_n come_v in_o power_n unto_o they_o 1_o thes_n 1.5_o thou_o that_o have_v trust_v to_o a_o persuasion_n of_o the_o grace_n and_o favour_n of_o god_n to_o thou_o in_o christ_n wrought_v in_o thou_o by_o thy_o own_o spirit_n thou_o have_v have_v no_o heavenly_a power_n in_o this_o persuasion_n but_o he_o that_o have_v faith_n wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n
there_o be_v a_o mighty_a power_n of_o god_n come_v down_o upon_o he_o when_o he_o be_v enable_v to_o believe_v thou_o that_o have_v a_o false_a faith_n apprehend_v it_o a_o easy_a thing_n to_o believe_v because_o thou_o do_v never_o feel_v a_o power_n from_o above_o come_v upon_o thou_o to_o enable_v thou_o to_o believe_v whereas_o the_o true_a believer_n know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o difficult_a thing_n to_o believe_v because_o the_o work_n of_o faith_n be_v the_o work_n of_o omnipotency_n according_a to_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n io._n 6_o 29._o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o you_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o he_o have_v send_v therefore_o if_o upon_o examination_n thou_o do_v find_v that_o thou_o be_v only_o pertwade_v concern_v the_o mystery_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n as_o thou_o be_v persuade_v of_o natural_a thing_n in_o a_o natural_a way_n and_o have_v not_o feel_v the_o power_n of_o heaven_n enable_v thou_o to_o believe_v thy_o faith_n be_v a_o false_a faith_n for_o where_o there_o be_v true_a faith_n a_o man_n feel_v the_o power_n of_o god_n enable_v he_o to_o believe_v the_o testimony_n that_o god_n give_v of_o his_o son_n christ_n i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o plain_a place_n to_o confirm_v this_o ephes_n 1.19_o 20._o where_o he_o pray_v for_o they_o that_o they_o may_v see_v the_o mighty_a power_n by_o which_o they_o be_v enable_v to_o believe_v do_v make_v use_n of_o many_o very_a emphatical_a expression_n that_o you_o may_v know_v say_v he_o what_o be_v the_o exceed_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n to_o us-ward_n who_o believe_v according_a to_o the_o work_n of_o his_o mighty_a power_n which_o he_o wrought_v in_o christ_n when_o he_o raise_v he_o from_o the_o dead_a there_o he_o speak_v not_o only_o of_o a_o power_n but_o the_o greatness_n of_o power_n and_o not_o only_o the_o greatness_n of_o power_n but_o the_o supereminent_a greatness_n of_o his_o power_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o as_o though_o he_o have_v not_o speak_v enough_o to_o set_v out_o the_o almightiness_n of_o the_o power_n by_o which_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o believe_v he_o do_v inform_v we_o that_o such_o a_o operation_n of_o the_o power_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o god_n for_o so_o the_o word_n may_v be_v translate_v by_o which_o jesus_n christ_n be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a and_o declare_v to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v put_v forth_o for_o the_o enable_v of_o we_o to_o believe_v thou_o that_o have_v not_o this_o power_n in_o thy_o soul_n thy_o persuasion_n be_v wrought_v in_o thy_o spirit_n not_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n &_o truth_n but_o it_o flow_v from_o thy_o own_o natural_a and_o carnal_a spirit_n and_o it_o be_v a_o persuasion_n that_o will_v never_o do_v thou_o good_a it_o will_v never_o bring_v thou_o true_a comfort_n a_o man_n that_o have_v not_o a_o better_a persuasion_n than_o this_o shall_v never_o see_v the_o face_n of_o god_n with_o joy_n 3_o i'faith_o which_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o do_v carry_v we_o out_o of_o ourselves_o a_o faithful_a man_n hat_n his_o life_n not_o in_o himself_o but_o in_o jesus_n christ_n he_o live_v not_o by_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o first_o but_o second_o adam_n he_o have_v his_o spiritual_a be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o in_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n he_o be_v join_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v one_o spirit_n he_o see_v the_o father_n in_o the_o son_n and_o the_o son_n in_o he_o and_o the_o father_n in_o he_o through_o his_o son_n according_a to_o the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 14.20_o you_o shall_v know_v that_o i_o be_o in_o my_o father_n and_o you_o in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o you_o paul_n speak_v of_o the_o spiritual_a thessalonian_o affirm_v that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o father_n and_o in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n 1_o thes_n 1.1_o by_o faith_n we_o enjoy_v the_o glory_n of_o union_n the_o glory_n which_o thou_o have_v give_v i_o i_o have_v give_v they_o that_o they_o be_v one_o even_o as_o we_o be_v one_o john_n 17._o though_o we_o have_v not_o the_o glory_n of_o equality_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d yet_o we_o have_v the_o glory_n of_o likeness_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d though_o we_o be_v not_o unite_v to_o the_o father_n to_o immediate_o as_o christ_n be_v by_o himself_o and_o in_o himself_o yet_o we_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o mediante_fw-la christo_fw-la by_o the_o mean_n and_o mediation_n of_o christ_n jesus_n this_o be_v the_o honour_n which_o be_v give_v to_o those_o who_o trust_v by_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 4_o lie_n i'faith_o which_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o do_v carry_v we_o beyond_o the_o world_n a_o believer_n look_v upon_o christ_n overcome_a the_o world_n for_o he_o do_v through_o faith_n overcome_v the_o world_n by_o he_o 1_o john_n 5.4_o whatsoever_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n overcom_v the_o world_n and_o this_o be_v the_o victory_n that_o overcom_v the_o world_n even_o your_o faith_n therefore_o the_o saint_n be_v say_v to_o be_v clothe_v with_o the_o sun_n and_o to_o have_v the_o moon_n under_o their_o sit_fw-mi rev._n 12._o because_o be_v through_o say_v clothe_v with_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n who_o be_v call_v the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n mal._n 4.2_o they_o trample_v upon_o all_o sublunary_a thing_n as_o worth_n nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o jesus_n christ_n five_o he_o that_o true_o believe_v in_o christ_n be_v anoint_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n and_o assure_v of_o his_o abide_n for_o ever_o in_o christ_n 1_o john_n 2.27_o the_o anoint_v which_o you_o have_v receive_v of_o he_o abide_v in_o you_o and_o as_o it_o have_v teach_v you_o you_o shall_v abide_v in_o he_o god_n shall_v lose_v his_o earnest_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o we_o to_o miscarry_v to_o the_o lose_n of_o our_o soul_n after_o we_o have_v this_o earnest_n from_o he_o which_o bind_v he_o to_o bring_v we_o to_o heaven_n and_o happiness_n this_o spirit_n persuade_v we_o that_o we_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n &_o that_o god_n will_v lose_v none_o of_o his_o son_n he_o that_o have_v this_o spirit_n know_v that_o no_o man_n that_o have_v the_o spirit_n can_v speak_v what_o he_o feel_v from_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o adoption_n in_o his_o own_o heart_n he_o admire_v grace_n when_o he_o look_v on_o god_n reconcile_v in_o christ_n to_o sinner_n &_o look_n on_o himself_o reconcile_v to_o god_n in_o believe_v and_o when_o he_o feel_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n witness_v with_o his_o spirit_n that_o he_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n he_o can_v go_v bold_o to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n know_v christ_n as_o his_o elder_a brother_n &_o god_n his_o father_n in_o he_o selfe-deceiving_a hypocrite_n do_v thou_o not_o begin_v to_o be_v convince_v that_o thy_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o that_o which_o have_v be_v speak_v concern_v this_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o but_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n 6._o as_o i_o tell_v you_o even_o now_o there_o be_v never_o true_a faith_n but_o true_a love_n follow_v it_o love_n be_v a_o ndividual_a companion_n of_o faith_n therefore_o such_o as_o have_v faith_n andnever_o have_v love_n accompany_v of_o it_o may_v be_v confident_a that_o their_o persuasion_n concern_v the_o grace_n and_o goodness_n god_n in_o christ_n be_v but_o a_o carnal_a and_o not_o a_o spiritual_a persuasion_n true_a faith_n work_v by_o love_n therefore_o if_o my_o work_n not_o by_o love_n it_o be_v a_o false_a faith_n this_o be_v a_o undeniable_a argument_n brethren_n mistake_v i_o not_o in_o this_o point_n unto_o which_o i_o now_o be_o speak_v mis-apprehending_a my_o meaning_n as_o if_o ibid_fw-la you_o love_v god_n &_o the_o brethren_n that_o you_o may_v believe_v &_o be_v justify_v no_o but_o i_o tell_v you_o now_o that_o where_o true_a lively_a and_o justify_v faith_n be_v there_o love_n will_v follow_v when_o we_o do_v in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n apprehend_v god_n love_n to_o we_o and_o the_o love_n of_o christ_n in_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o we_o can_v but_o love_n god_n again_o and_o love_n christ_n who_o have_v love_v we_o and_o give_v himself_o for_o we_o so_o that_o where_o there_o be_v no_o true_a love_n there_o be_v no_o true_a faith_n if_o it_o be_v truth_n that_o where_o fire_n be_v there_o will_v be_v heat_n it_o will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o where_o there_o be_v no_o heat_n there_o be_v no_o fire_n so_o if_o where_o true_a faith_n be_v love_n will_v follow_v it_o will_v necessary_o follow_v that_o where_o true_a love_n do_v not_o follow_v there_o true_a faith_n do_v not_o precede_v 1_o john_n 4.19_o we_o
lord_n god_n will_v fill_v his_o spiritual_a house_n or_o temple_n with_o glory_n and_o i_o will_v give_v peace_n say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n hag._n 2.9_o god_n will_v be_v the_o glory_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o spiritual_a jerusalem_n zech._n 2.9_o and_o he_o will_v remove_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o land_n in_o one_o day_n v._o 3.9_o all_o these_o promise_n be_v plain_a demonstration_n of_o god_n powerful_a grace_n and_o man_n weakness_n second_o we_o have_v not_o only_o the_o bare_a promise_n but_o the_o covenant_n of_o god_n and_o this_o covenant_n confirm_v and_o bind_v by_o a_o oath_n mic._n 7.20_o thou_o will_v perform_v the_o truth_n to_o jacob_n and_o the_o mercy_n to_o abraham_n which_o thou_o have_v swear_v unto_o our_o father_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o by_o any_o power_n or_o work_v in_o ourselves_o if_o it_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o god_n have_v covenant_v in_o his_o grace_n to_o do_v it_o for_o we_o then_o certain_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v it_o ourselves_o but_o god_n have_v covenant_v to_o do_v it_o for_o we_o he_o have_v covenant_v to_o write_v his_o law_n in_o our_o heart_n the_o law_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o apostle_n call_v it_o rom._n 5._o therefore_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o work_v faith_n in_o our_o own_o spirit_n why_o shall_v god_n tie_v himself_o in_o a_o covenant_n and_o bind_v this_o covenant_n with_o a_o oath_n to_o do_v this_o for_o we_o if_o we_o be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o ourselves_o why_o shall_v god_n do_v any_o thing_n for_o his_o own_o name_n sake_n if_o the_o creature_n can_v do_v enough_o to_o make_v itself_o happy_a by_o his_o own_o strength_n in_o vain_a be_v a_o covenant_n of_o grace_n promulgate_v for_o man_n salvation_n and_o for_o discovery_n of_o this_o salvation_n if_o man_n can_v find_v out_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n by_o his_o own_o wisdom_n why_o must_v christ_n guide_v our_o foot_n into_o the_o way_n of_o peace_n luke_n 1._o if_o of_o ourselves_o we_o can_v find_v out_o these_o way_n of_o life_n &_o peace_n god_n have_v make_v it_o his_o work_n &_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o our_o work_n wrought_v by_o our_o own_o strength_n god_n have_v promise_v faith_n as_o a_o gift_n free_o to_o be_v bestow_v upon_o undeserving_a man_n therefore_o man_n by_o the_o improvement_n of_o his_o part_n and_o labour_n can_v purchase_v it_o as_o the_o reward_n of_o his_o endeavour_n three_o god_n work_v faith_n in_o time_n according_a to_o his_o eternal_a purpose_n and_o decree_n before_o time_n but_o the_o eternal_a purpose_n of_o god_n be_v the_o purpose_n of_o his_o grace_n therefore_o god_n work_v faith_n according_a to_o his_o purpose_n of_o grace_n the_o first_o of_o these_o proposition_n have_v be_v already_o prove_v the_o second_o be_v evident_a from_o 2_o tim._n 1.9_o so_o that_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o faith_n flow_v from_o eternal_a grace_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v not_o of_o ourselves_o but_o it_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n four_o there_o be_v nothing_o can_v merit_v or_o deserve_v faith_n in_o man_n before_o faith_n be_v wrought_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v give_v as_o a_o free_a gift_n this_o be_v plain_a by_o rom._n 9.16_o it_o be_v not_o of_o he_o that_o will_v nor_o of_o he_o that_o run_v but_o of_o god_n that_o show_v mercy_n john_n 1.13_o there_o may_v be_v as_o much_o in_o one_o that_o shall_v be_v damn_v as_o in_o he_o that_o shall_v be_v save_v before_o his_o conversion_n peter_n do_v no_o more_o to_o merit_n or_o deserve_v his_o first_o faith_n than_o judas_n do_v god_n grace_n be_v his_o rule_n by_o which_o he_o work_v in_o give_v faith_n unto_o any_o man_n and_o therefore_o faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n five_o god_n design_n in_o justify_v a_o sinner_n through_o faith_n as_o have_v be_v former_o prove_v be_v the_o magnify_v of_o his_o own_o free_a love_n unto_o the_o creature_n in_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o do_v acquaint_v we_o that_o faith_n be_v the_o free_a gift_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o so_o he_o may_v divest_v the_o creature_n of_o glory_v in_o himself_o or_o in_o any_o thing_n from_o himself_o if_o the_o father_n shall_v justify_v we_o by_o grace_n through_o faith_n and_o we_o shall_v apprehend_v that_o our_o faith_n be_v of_o ourselves_o there_o will_v be_v some_o glory_v in_o ourselves_o and_o therefore_o he_o do_v justify_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n as_o a_o fruit_n effect_n and_o free_a gift_n of_o his_o own_o grace_n so_o proud_a we_o be_v natural_o that_o though_o we_o be_v convince_v that_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n as_o a_o gift_n give_v unto_o we_o as_o alm_n unto_o a_o beggar_n yet_o we_o shall_v be_v proud_a if_o we_o know_v that_o of_o ourselves_o we_o have_v a_o hand_n to_o receive_v it_o and_o therefore_o god_n do_v not_o only_o in_o his_o grace_n give_v we_o the_o gift_n of_o eternal_a life_n but_o the_o hand_n by_o which_o we_o receive_v it_o thus_o we_o be_v save_v by_o grace_n through_o faith_n which_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n six_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o no_o man_n can_v say_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n but_o by_o the_o holy_a spirit_n 1_o cor._n 12.3_o but_o by_o faith_n we_o confess_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n and_o therefore_o it_o do_v plain_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v from_o the_o holy_a spirit_n of_o grace_n the_o spirit_n do_v show_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v free_o give_v we_o of_o god_n 2_o cor._n 3.12_o and_o therefore_o faith_n be_v free_o give_v we_o of_o god_n if_o every_o thing_n than_o faith_n every_o good_a and_o perfect_a gift_n come_v down_o from_o the_o father_n of_o light_n if_o we_o will_v believe_v james_n jam._n 1.17_o and_o therefore_o we_o must_v grant_v that_o faith_n be_v give_v unto_o we_o of_o god_n or_o else_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o good_a and_o perfect_a gift_n obj_fw-la but_o some_o may_v say_v if_o faith_n be_v a_o gift_n why_o do_v our_o saviour_n bid_v we_o to_o buy_v gold_n try_v in_o the_o fire_n that_o we_o may_v be_v clothe_v that_o the_o shame_n of_o our_o nakedness_n may_v not_o appear_v rev._n 3.18_o answ_n this_o word_n buy_v be_v take_v proper_o and_o so_o it_o signify_v the_o purchase_n of_o something_o by_o some_o considerable_a price_n which_o be_v give_v for_o it_o there_o can_v be_v no_o buy_n of_o a_o thing_n without_o some_o price_n nulla_fw-la exemptio_fw-la sine_fw-la pretio_fw-la esse_fw-la potest_fw-la justinian_n in_o stit_fw-la lib._n 3_o tit._n 24._o and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o can_v buy_v faith_n or_o christ_n have_v no_o considerable_a price_n to_o pay_v for_o christ_n before_o we_o enjoy_v christ_n 2_o lie_n buy_v be_v take_v improper_o isa_n 55.1_o buy_v wine_n and_o milk_n without_o money_n and_o without_o price_n and_o if_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v buy_v it_o must_v be_v thus_o buy_v by_o we_o we_o have_v no_o money_n or_o price_n to_o part_v with_o for_o faith_n and_o what_o be_v thus_o buy_v by_o we_o be_v free_o give_v unto_o we_o so_o that_o this_o objection_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o weaken_v the_o truth_n which_o have_v be_v deliver_v it_o stand_v still_o unshaken_a and_o unmoveable_a upon_o its_o own_o basis_n faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n have_v prove_v it_o sufficient_o by_o these_o consideration_n that_o faith_n be_v a_o gift_n i_o shall_v draw_v some_o useful_a conclusion_n from_o they_o and_o put_v a_o period_n to_o my_o discourse_n first_o this_o overthrow_v the_o meritoriousnesse_n of_o the_o righteousness_n of_o our_o own_o work_n qualification_n or_o preparation_n before_o faith_n for_o the_o deserve_a any_o thing_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o god_n to_o engage_v he_o to_o give_v we_o faith_n what_o we_o receive_v as_o a_o free_a gift_n can_v be_v give_v we_o in_o consideration_n of_o our_o merit_n or_o deserve_n i_o shall_v but_o touch_v this_o because_o i_o have_v former_o take_v pain_n to_o beat_v down_o the_o antichristian_a monster_n of_o freewill_n and_o merit_n of_o work_n which_o like_o two_o twin_n of_o the_o same_o womb_n do_v live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o same_o moment_n it_o be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n must_v seek_v we_o before_o ever_o we_o can_v find_v he_o and_o we_o can_v as_o we_o ought_v desire_v faith_n until_o faith_n be_v free_o bestow_v upon_o we_o god_n free_a grace_n do_v prevent_v man_n free_a will_n and_o if_o god_n leave_v we_o to_o ourselves_o and_o to_o our_o own_o labour_n endeavour_n act_n duty_n and_o performance_n and_o do_v not_o come_v in_o by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n upon_o we_o we_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a true_o and_o spiritual_o to_o understand_v any_o thing_n of_o free_a grace_n away_o then_o with_o the_o foolish_a conceit_n of_o
those_o who_o cry_v up_o the_o strength_n of_o man_n will_n and_o his_o precedent_a qualification_n of_o righteousness_n and_o holiness_n for_o the_o make_n of_o some_o man_n worthy_a to_o close_v with_o christ_n in_o a_o promise_n of_o free_a grace_n rather_o than_o great_a sinner_n 2_o this_o may_v inform_v we_o that_o such_o shall_v certain_o believe_v who_o god_n will_v enable_v to_o believe_v through_o grace_n act_v 18.27_o a_o infinite_a power_n be_v of_o such_o strength_n that_o a_o finite_a power_n be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v it_o but_o whatsoever_o power_n there_o i●_n in_o the_o creature_n by_o which_o it_o may_v resist_v th●_n work_v of_o god_n grace_n it_o be_v but_o finite_a and_o th●_n grace_v whereby_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o believe_v i●_n infinite_a therefore_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v th●_n infinite_a power_n of_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o be_v enable_v to_o believe_v take_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n with_o all_o that_o be_v i●_n the_o heart_n of_o man_n all_o his_o sin_n ignorances_n and_n corruption_n conjoin_v their_o force_n t●_n hinder_v the_o work_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n all_o these_o together_o be_v but_o a_o finite_a power_n but_o when_o god_n come_v he_o come_v with_o a_o infinite_a power_n to_o enable_v we_o to_o believe_v therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o resist_v the_o power_n of_o god_n when_o he_o be_v determine_v to_o give_v we_o faith_n faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o his_o almighty_a power_n but_o some_o may_v here_o object_n with_o the_o arminiaus_fw-la that_o place_n of_o stephen_n act_v 7.51_o you_o stiffnecked_a and_o uncircumcised_a in_o heart_n and_o ear_n you_o have_v always_o resist_v the_o holy_a spiri_n here_o say_v they_o you_o see_v that_o man_n have_v resist_v the_o holy_a spirit_n therefore_o god_n do_v not_o so_o work_v upon_o man_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o grace_n that_o he_o leave_v they_o altogether_o unable_a to_o resist_v to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o there_o be_v a_o twofold_a power_n that_o god_n put_v forth_o a_o ordinary_a power_n in_o the_o preach_n of_o his_o word_n when_o by_o entreaty_n beseech_v and_o promise_n and_o the_o like_a he_o allure_v and_o entice_v man_n in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n and_o knock_v at_o the_o door_n of_o their_o heart_n for_o entrance_n this_o common_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v resist_v and_o so_o all_o wicked_a and_o ungodly_a man_n in_o this_o sense_n resist_v the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o reject_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o there_o be_v another_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o be_v that_o inward_a spiritual_a power_n by_o which_o god_n come_v on_o those_o who_o he_o intend_v to_o save_v thus_o he_o come_v not_o only_o in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n in_o the_o language_n of_o man_n but_o in_o the_o power_n of_o heaven_n and_o though_o the_o former_a work_n of_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v resist_v this_o latter_a can_v be_v resist_v though_o we_o may_v reject_v the_o word_n of_o god_n preach_v in_o the_o letter_n and_o some_o common_a working_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o our_o own_o heart_n and_o not_o give_v entertainment_n to_o jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o knock_v at_o the_o door_n of_o our_o heart_n in_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o word_n yet_o when_o it_o come_v down_o with_o power_n to_o open_v the_o heart_n as_o he_o do_v lydia_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o prevail_v against_o he_o when_o god_n intend_v powerful_o to_o open_v the_o door_n of_o our_o spirit_n we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o keep_v it_o lock_v he_o will_v sweet_o force_v we_o to_o open_v the_o door_n and_o by_o his_o spirit_n and_o grace_n brea●_n in_o upon_o we_o and_o not_o suffer_v we_o to_o shut_v he_o out_o 〈◊〉_d our_o heart_n and_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o bless_v go●_n that_o it_o be_v so_o for_o unless_o it_o be_v so_o no_o man_n i●_n the_o world_n shall_v ever_o be_v save_v no_o man_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v ever_o receive_v christ_n unless_o god_n do_v come_v with_o a_o infinite_a power_n and_o pleas●●●●_n violence_n force_v he_o to_o believe_v if_o it_o be_v not_o thus_o that_o god_n do_v wor●_n this_o unresistable_a way_n in_o those_o who_o he_o inten●_n to_o save_v there_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v a_o uncertainty_n whether_o ever_o any_o man_n or_o woman_n shall_v for_o be_v save_v by_o jesus_n christ_n for_o if_o every_o m●_n and_o woman_n in_o the_o world_n have_v power_n to_o re●●_n grace_v offer_v &_o not_o to_o believe_v at_o all_o than_o 〈◊〉_d must_v follow_v that_o it_o may_v be_v impossible_a a●●●_n the_o fall_n that_o never_o a_o man_n or_o woman_n in_o the_o world_n shall_v ever_o be_v save_v by_o christ_n and_o this_o absurdity_n will_v follow_v from_o it_o that_o god_n after_o man_n fall_n can_v not_o be_v certain_a that_o any_o man_n shall_v be_v save_v by_o christ_n and_o so_o it_o will_v take_v away_o the_o foreknowledge_n of_o god_n because_o he_o can_v not_o know_v but_o that_o every_o man_n in_o the_o world_n may_v resist_v &_o reject_v jefus_fw-la christ_n three_o this_o may_v give_v in_o some_o support_n to_o some_o tremble_a hearer_n who_o be_v convince_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o unbelief_n and_o be_v not_o able_a to_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n thou_o be_v ready_a to_o despair_v when_o thou_o apprehend_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o thou_o true_o to_o believe_v of_o thyself_o but_o let_v thy_o spirit_n be_v uphold_v with_o this_o consideration_n that_o god_n be_v able_a to_o give_v thou_o faith_n while_o i_o be_o speak_v of_o faith_n and_o show_v thou_o the_o worker_n of_o it_o it_o may_v be_v thou_o think_v that_o thou_o shall_v never_o have_v joy_n comfort_n and_o assurance_n of_o salvation_n but_o by_o believe_v and_o yet_o thou_o be_v not_o able_a to_o believe_v and_o therefore_o comfort_v thyself_o in_o this_o though_o thou_o can_v do_v nothing_o god_n be_v able_a to_o enable_v thou_o to_o do_v all_o thing_n phil._n 4.13_o as_o the_o martyr_n when_o some_o tell_v he_o that_o when_o he_o come_v to_o suffer_v he_o will_v rather_o deny_v his_o tenet_n then_o burn_v it_o be_v true_a say_v he_o i_o of_o myself_o shall_v do_v so_o but_o god_n be_v able_a to_o enable_v i_o so_o though_o thou_o know_v that_o thou_o of_o thyself_o can_v not_o believe_v know_v that_o god_n be_v able_a to_o enable_v thou_o present_o to_o believe_v thou_o that_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o thy_o unbelieving_a heart_n and_o of_o that_o mountain_n of_o infidelity_n that_o lie_v upon_o thy_o spirit_n and_o that_o thou_o be_v able_a to_o say_v i_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o believe_v of_o myself_o while_o the_o world_n stand_v know_v that_o god_n be_v ablde_v in_o this_o momentt_n to_o give_v thou_o faith_n four_o this_o may_v inform_v we_o concern_v the_o nature_n of_o true_a faith_n by_o which_o it_o may_v be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o faith_n of_o hypocritical_a formalist_n the_o hypocrite_n not_o be_v acquaint_v with_o his_o own_o disability_n for_o the_o work_n of_o save_a faith_n in_o his_o own_o heart_n do_v apprehend_v that_o he_o can_v do_v the_o work_n of_o god_n by_o himself_o in_o his_o own_o strength_n like_o the_o carnal_a hearer_n of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 6.28_o what_o shall_v we_o do_v that_o we_o may_v work_v the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o when_o he_o apprehend_v that_o he_o do_v believe_v he_o glori_v more_o in_o his_o own_o act_n labouring_n and_o endeavour_n by_o which_o he_o conceive_v that_o he_o have_v obtain_v faith_n then_o in_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n have_v no_o spiritual_a knowledge_n of_o that_o faith_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o almightiness_n of_o god_n powerful_a &_o irresistible_a grace_n but_o if_o it_o be_v otherwise_o with_o a_o true_a son_n of_o abraham_n his_o faith_n be_v of_o another_o nature_n have_v a_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a tincture_n in_o it_o from_o that_o spirit_n by_o who_o it_o ●●_o wrought_v he_o prize_v not_o his_o faith_n of_o the_o natural_a spirit_n but_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o heavenly_a spirit_n he_o can_v set_v his_o seal_n to_o that_o truth_n of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 6.65_o that_o no_o man_n can_v come_v unto_o he_o except_o it_o be_v give_v a_o unto_o he_o of_o his_o father_n he_o be_v not_o proud_a of_o his_o faith_n because_o he_o look_v upon_o it_o in_o the_o glass_n of_o god_n free_a grace_n do_v account_v it_o rather_o god_n work_v then_o his_o own_o according_a to_o that_o of_o our_o saviour_n john_n 6._o this_o be_v the_o work_n of_o god_n that_o you_o believe_v upon_o which_o word_n one_o of_o the_o ancient_n have_v this_o observation_n non_fw-la dixit_fw-la hoc_fw-la
est_fw-la opus_fw-la vestrum_fw-la sed_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la opus_fw-la dei_fw-la he_o say_v not_o this_o be_v your_o work_n but_o the_o work_n of_o god_n our_o saviour_n speak_v to_o his_o disciple_n mar._n 4.11_o to_o you_o say_v he_o it_o be_v give_v to_o know_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o unto_o they_o that_o be_v without_o all_o those_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o parable_n the_o gospel_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v a_o mystery_n and_o parable_n unto_o many_o until_o the_o lord_n do_v give_v we_o the_o precious_a gift_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o we_o understand_v these_o mystery_n of_o god_n so_o that_o he_o that_o true_o understand_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v look_v upon_o his_o spiritual_a knowledge_n as_o a_o gift_n what_o be_v complete_a and_o perfect_a faith_n but_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n by_o which_o we_o believe_v that_o all_o our_o spiritual_a good_a thing_n and_o faith_n itself_o be_v free_o give_v unto_o we_o by_o god_n quae_fw-la est_fw-la plena_fw-la et_fw-fr perfect_a a_fw-fr fides_fw-la quae_fw-la credit_n ex_fw-la deo_fw-la et_fw-la omne_fw-la bona_fw-la nostra_fw-la et_fw-la ipsam_fw-la fidem_fw-la aug._n five_o this_o may_v convince_v those_o of_o their_o error_n who_o be_v convince_v of_o sin_n do_v refuse_v to_o turn_v into_o the_o true_a way_n of_o salvation_n by_o believe_v suppose_v in_o the_o pride_n and_o ignorance_n of_o their_o heart_n that_o this_o be_v too_o short_a and_o near_o a_o way_n to_o justification_n and_o happiness_n these_o will_v first_o do_v good_a work_n get_v strength_n against_o all_o their_o corruption_n be_v make_v holy_a &_o sanctify_a man_n and_o then_o they_o think_v that_o they_o may_v safe_o make_v bold_a to_o lay_v hold_n of_o some_o promise_n of_o grace_n for_o justification_n and_o salvation_n it_o be_v thus_o with_o i_o when_o god_n do_v at_o first_o begin_v to_o awaken_v my_o conscience_n with_o the_o dreadful_a fight_n of_o my_o sin_n and_o course_n of_o profaneness_n in_o which_o i_o have_v live_v and_o some_o month_n i_o go_v in_o this_o way_n never_o in_o the_o spirit_n consider_v that_o the_o object_n of_o god_n justify_v grace_n be_v a_o ungodly_a man_n and_o a_o sinner_n and_o not_o know_v that_o spiritual_a regeneration_n be_v not_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o gospel_n though_o i_o can_v then_o in_o a_o carnal_a way_n as_o many_o blind_a protestant_n now_o can_v have_v speak_v and_o preach_v more_o glorious_o with_o rhetorical_a word_n and_o flourish_a expression_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n without_o work_n than_o now_o i_o can_v or_o will_n but_o as_o god_n who_o from_o all_o eternity_n have_v single_v i_o out_o unto_o salvation_n by_o jesus_n christ_n be_v please_v to_o convince_v i_o of_o my_o ignorance_n and_o to_o bring_v i_o to_o rest_v upon_o his_o grace_n in_o his_o son_n as_o a_o poor_a wretched_a sinner_n enable_v i_o to_o believe_v that_o my_o sin_n be_v blot_v out_o for_o his_o own_o name_n sake_n though_o my_o sin_n do_v testify_v against_o i_o so_o these_o who_o be_v in_o the_o same_o condition_n in_o which_o i_o then_o be_v if_o they_o be_v in_o the_o number_n of_o those_o who_o god_n have_v give_v unto_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v convince_v that_o by_o faith_n through_o christ_n we_o have_v access_n to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n with_o boldness_n and_o that_o faith_n be_v not_o give_v in_o consideration_n of_o any_o precede_a act_n of_o holiness_n or_o sanctification_n but_o as_o the_o free_a gift_n of_o our_o heavenly_a father_n that_o they_o who_o have_v thus_o err_v in_o spirit_n isa_n 29.24_o may_v come_v unto_o understanding_n and_o such_o who_o have_v murmur_v against_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n grace_n may_v learn_v doctrine_n give_v i_o leave_v brief_o to_o lay_v down_o some_o convince_a consideration_n which_o may_v bring_v to_o your_o remembrance_n those_o thing_n which_o we_o have_v more_o full_o handle_v 1_o consi_fw-la the_o word_n and_o promise_n which_o we_o do_v enjoy_v be_v free_a gift_n of_o god_n favour_n what_o reason_n can_v we_o give_v why_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o outward_a mean_n of_o grace_n rather_o than_o american_n but_o his_o own_o free_a grace_n psalm_n 147.19_o he_o show_v his_o word_n unto_o jacob_n his_o statute_n and_o his_o judgement_n unto_o israel_n it_o be_v the_o lord_n that_o bring_v the_o external_a mean_n and_o word_n of_o grace_n as_o a_o gift_n more_o worth_a than_o the_o whole_a world_n unto_o a_o people_n according_a to_o that_o sweet_a promise_n of_o god_n ezek._n 29_o 21._o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o open_n of_o the_o mouth_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o they_o the_o great_a and_o precious_a promise_n by_o the_o believe_a of_o which_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n be_v free_o give_v unto_o we_o 2_o pet._n 1.4_o 2_o consi_fw-la the_o power_n of_o god_n do_v make_v the_o difference_n between_o man_n who_o do_v enjoy_v the_o outward_a mean_n 2_o pe._n 1.3_o his_o divine_a power_n have_v give_v we_o all_o thing_n that_o pertain_v unto_o life_n and_o godlinsse_n through_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o who_o have_v call_v we_o to_o glory_n and_o virtue_n if_o god_n do_v put_v forth_o that_o omnipotent_a power_n in_o all_o which_o he_o do_v in_o some_o who_o hear_v the_o gospel_n all_o as_o well_o as_o some_o shall_v believe_v 1_o cor._n 3.7_o neither_o he_o that_o plant_v be_v any_o thing_n neither_o he_o that_o water_v but_o god_n that_o give_v the_o encaease_n upon_o which_o word_n one_o give_v we_o this_o observation_n as_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v plant_v and_o water_v do_v not_o spring_v up_o th●●●_n and_o prosper_v but_o those_o who_o god_n do_v bless_v so_o all_o man_n who_o be_v plant_v in_o the_o church_n of_o ghrist_n and_o water_v by_o the_o preach_n or_o the_o word_n do_v not_o true_o believe_v but_o those_o upon_o who_o god_n bestow_v faith_n nec_fw-la omnium_fw-la est_fw-la 〈◊〉_d qu●_n 〈◊〉_d verbum_fw-la sed_fw-la quibus_fw-la deus_fw-la part●●_n m●nsuram_fw-la ●idei_fw-la sicut_fw-la nec_fw-la omne_fw-la germinant_fw-la quae_fw-la plantamu_fw-la ●t_a rigantur_fw-la but_o i_o have_v touch_v upon_o this_o before_o 3_o consi_fw-la god_n good_a grace_n do_v prevent_v man_n good_a work_n in_o his_o justification_n god_n in_o his_o grace_n must_v give_v we_o a_o new_a creation_n &_o heavenly_a be_v in_o his_o word_n make_v flesh_n 1_o joh._n before_o good_a work_n can_v be_v wrought_v by_o we_o sicut_fw-la creatore_fw-la opus_fw-la habemus_fw-la ut_fw-la essemus_fw-la sic_fw-la salvatore_fw-la ut_fw-la revivisceremus_fw-la aug._n as_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o creator_n to_o give_v we_o being_n as_o creature_n so_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o we_o shall_v have_v a_o saviour_n to_o make_v we_o new_a creature_n through_o faith_n 4_o consi_fw-la god_n grace_n do_v not_o only_o prevent_v our_o work_n but_o faith_n itself_o faith_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o therefore_o god_n be_v gravious_a before_o we_o believe_v it_o be_v a_o blessing_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n and_o therefore_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v that_o we_o be_v under_o the_o new_a covenant_n before_o we_o do_v believe_v by_o which_o we_o may_v plain_o see_v that_o faith_n be_v a_o free_a gift_n mercy_n be_v show_v unto_o the_o faithful_a and_o it_o be_v show_v unto_o we_o to_o make_v we_o faithful_a fideli_fw-la datur_fw-la quidem_fw-la miserecordia_fw-la sed_fw-la data_fw-la est_fw-la etiam_fw-la ut_fw-la esset_fw-la fidelis_fw-la aug._n one_o say_v that_o mercy_n be_v show_v unto_o paul_n not_o only_o because_o he_o be_v faithful_a but_o that_o he_o may_v be_v faithfufull_a the_o apostle_n to_o prove_v the_o freeness_n of_o grace_n in_o bestow_v faith_n as_o a_o gift_n upon_o we_o have_v these_o three_o expression_n within_o the_o limit_n of_o three_o verse_n rom._n 5.15_o 16_o 17._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d call_v faith_n a_o gift_n and_o a_o gift_n of_o grace_n and_o a_o gift_n of_o grace_n for_o righteousness_n 5._o consi_fw-la there_o be_v no_o way_n to_o happiness_n for_o thou_o but_o by_o grace_n and_o no_o close_n in_o any_o sure_a or_o comfortable_a way_n with_o grace_n but_o through_o faith_n we_o be_v all_o condemn_v by_o the_o law_n and_o there_o be_v no_o escape_v for_o we_o but_o by_o that_o pardon_n which_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n in_o the_o prerogative_n of_o his_o grace_n do_v give_v unto_o we_o and_o no_o way_n for_o we_o to_o be_v able_a to_o read_v our_o pardon_n unless_o god_n teach_v we_o and_o therefore_o god_n have_v promise_v isa_n 14.3_o to_o give_v we_o rest_v from_o our_o sorrow_n fear_n and_o hard_a bondage_n with_o grace_n psal_n 84.11_o knowledge_n ezek._n 29.21_o i'faith_o rom._n 11.26_o strength_n and_o peace_n psalm_n
that_o by_o god_n grace_n in_o the_o apprehension_n of_o it_o we_o be_v make_v unblameable_a and_o holy_a before_o he_o in_o love_n which_o be_v all_o that_o i_o contend_v for_o i_o may_v add_v this_o that_o if_o god_n have_v choose_v we_o to_o love_v joy_n sanctification_n and_o the_o like_a which_o be_v sin_n and_o sinful_a that_o then_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o to_o sin_n or_o to_o something_o sinful_a which_o conceit_n in_o my_o apprehension_n do_v carry_v such_o a_o absurdity_n in_o the_o face_n of_o it_o that_o it_o need_v not_o a_o confutation_n object_n they_o be_v not_o sin_n in_o their_o moral_a nature_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v do_v but_o they_o be_v so_o as_o do_v by_o we_o answ_n god_n have_v not_o choose_v we_o unto_o they_o as_o they_o be_v consider_v only_o in_o his_o command_n but_o he_o have_v choose_v we_o unto_o they_o as_o they_o be_v to_o be_v act_v and_o do_v by_o we_o as_o it_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n and_o therefore_o this_o objection_n have_v no_o strength_n in_o it_o to_o weaken_v our_o argument_n arg._n 12._o if_o the_o new_a creature_n be_v sinful_a &_o work_v his_o sinful_a or_o sin_n it_o will_v nullify_v god_n intention_n in_o our_o justification_n who_o do_v justify_v we_o when_o we_o be_v unholy_a that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o holy_a ephes_n 2.10_o we_o be_v his_o workmanship_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n unto_o good_a work_n which_o god_n bathe_v before_o ordain_v that_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o they_o we_o be_v not_o ordain_v to_o walk_v in_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a but_o to_o walk_v in_o good_a work_n we_o be_v redeem_v from_o sin_n that_o we_o may_v be_v purify_v unto_o himself_o a_o peculiar_a people_n and_o grace_n teach_v we_o to_o live_v sober_o righteous_o and_o godly_a in_o this_o present_a world_n not_o sinful_o but_o righteous_o god_n make_v we_o good_a tree_n by_o justification_n and_o then_o enable_v we_o to_o bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n there_o must_v be_v a_o root_n before_o there_o can_v be_v fruit_n so_o god_n give_v we_o a_o root_n or_o seed_n of_o holiness_n before_o we_o can_v bring_v forth_o holy_a fruit_n and_o righteous_a action_n and_o when_o the_o good_a seed_n be_v sow_o in_o good_a ground_n it_o can_v but_o bring_v forth_o good_a fruit_n mat._n 13.23_o which_o place_n may_v give_v more_o light_n for_o the_o clear_n of_o that_o objection_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o there_o can_v not_o be_v good_a fruit_n though_o the_o seed_n be_v good_a because_o the_o ground_n be_v not_o good_a arg._n 13._o god_n do_v free_v we_o from_o the_o law_n of_o work_n and_o do_v bring_v we_o under_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n that_o we_o may_v by_o grace_n be_v enable_v to_o do_v those_o work_n which_o we_o be_v not_o able_a to_o do_v by_o virtue_n of_o moral_a command_n the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o gospel-promise_n shall_v be_v as_o ineffectual_a for_o sanctification_n as_o the_o law_n if_o all_o that_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o under_o that_o covenant_n be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a and_o therefore_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o a_o man_n under_o grace_n have_v a_o purity_n of_o sanctification_n in_o he_o god_n bring_v we_o from_o moses_n who_o be_v the_o lawgiver_n and_o deliver_v we_o from_o the_o covenant_n of_o work_n in_o give_v we_o to_o jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v the_o giver_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o may_v make_v we_o holy_a in_o a_o gracious_a life_n and_o conversation_n the_o apostle_n set_v this_o forth_o unto_o we_o rom._n 7.6_o but_o now_o we_o be_v deliver_v from_o the_o law_n that_o be_v dead_a wherein_o we_o be_v hold_v that_o we_o shall_v serve_v in_o newness_n of_o spirit_n and_o not_o in_o the_o oldness_n of_o the_o letter_n we_o be_v free_v from_o the_o service_n of_o god_n in_o the_o law_n of_o work_n under_o which_o we_o serve_v as_o slave_n till_o we_o be_v bring_v to_o christ_n that_o we_o may_v serve_v as_o son_n in_o obedience_n to_o all_o moral_a command_n under_o the_o sweet_a gracious_a &_o glorious_a government_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o be_v as_o well_o a_o lawgiver_n isa_n 33.22_o to_o write_v his_o law_n of_o faith_n and_o love_n in_o our_o heart_n hebr._n 8._o as_o a_o saviour_n to_o save_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o cut_v off_o all_o objection_n against_o this_o argument_n we_o may_v take_v notice_n that_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o only_o call_v good_a and_o holy_a as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o promise_n or_o command_v but_o they_o be_v good_a and_o holy_a and_o call_v fruit_n of_o righteousness_n as_o they_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o and_o by_o we_o with_o the_o omnipotent_a help_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n we_o be_v call_v the_o tree_n of_o righteousness_n isa_n 61.3_o and_o fear_v and_o love_n be_v fruit_n of_o righteousness_n as_o wrought_v in_o we_o jer._n 31._o hebr._n 8._o the_o 14_o argument_n may_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o oath_n of_o god_n if_o god_n shall_v not_o perform_v this_o for_o the_o saint_n god_n shall_v be_v perjure_v which_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o speak_v the_o oath_n of_o god_n bind_v he_o god_n in_o his_o word_n which_o be_v the_o character_n of_o his_o mind_n have_v discover_v his_o hatred_n of_o perjury_n and_o false_a swear_n we_o can_v think_v that_o god_n who_o hate_v perjury_n in_o other_o shall_v forswear_v himself_o but_o we_o have_v not_o only_o the_o promise_n but_o the_o oath_n of_o god_n for_o this_o so_o that_o unless_o we_o will_v say_v that_o god_n forswears_a himself_o we_o must_v subscribe_v to_o this_o truth_n to_o wit_n that_o god_n give_v his_o saint_n his_o spirit_n and_o in_o the_o spirit_n holiness_n and_o righteousness_n i_o will_v give_v you_o a_o place_n for_o this_o lu._n 1.73_o 74._o the_o oath_n which_o be_v swear_v to_o our_o father_n abraham_n what_o have_v he_o swear_v that_o he_o will_v grant_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o enemy_n here_o be_v our_o justification_n we_o be_v deliver_v out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o sin_n death_n and_o the_o devil_n but_o be_v this_o all_o no_o he_o have_v deliver_v we_o out_o of_o the_o hand_n of_o our_o enemy_n that_o we_o may_v serve_v he_o without_o fear_n that_o be_v without_o slavish_a fear_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n before_o he_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n some_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o people_n of_o god_n shall_v live_v holy_o and_o righteous_o to_o men-ward_n as_o they_o speak_v but_o that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o anctification_n be_v not_o to_o god-ward_o this_o place_n overthrow_v this_o distinction_n he_o say_v not_o that_o we_o shall_v walk_v holy_o and_o righteous_o before_o man_n only_o as_o hypocrite_n may_v but_o he_o ●aith_o that_o we_o shall_v serve_v in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n before_o he_o we_o shall_v not_o do_v such_o work_n which_o luther_n and_o other_o have_v call_v vice_n vitia_fw-la affirm_v that_o all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o regenerate_v man_n be_v vice_n nor_o such_o work_n which_o be_v sinfnl_o vitiata_fw-la as_o some_o other_o speak_v bu●uch_o work_v which_o god_n who_o can_v lie_v call_v righteous_a work_n nay_o righteousness_n in_o the_o abstract_n we_o shall_v serve_v he_o without_o fear_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n not_o only_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n for_o ofttimes_o they_o look_v on_o good_a work_n as_o though_o they_o be_v bad_a but_o good_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n they_o come_v from_o a_o sweet_a fountain_n therefore_o the_o water_n can_v be_v bitter_a or_o brackish_a from_o the_o fountain_n of_o his_o own_o spirit_n in_o his_o saint_n if_o the_o work_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v nothing_o but_o sin_n or_o sinful_a how_o can_v the_o oath_n of_o god_n be_v fulfil_v that_o they_o shall_v serve_v he_o in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n object_n before_o he_o in_o this_o place_n as_o in_o other_o place_n do_v mean_a under_o his_o protection_n gen._n 17.1_o answ_n though_o it_o may_v be_v grant_v that_o sometime_o before_o he_o may_v signify_v under_o his_o protection_n yet_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o this_o place_n but_o he_o do_v rather_o inform_v we_o how_o saint_n do_v approve_v themselves_o before_o god_n by_o sanctification_n as_o paul_n labour_v in_o godly_a sincerity_n to_o have_v his_o conscience_n void_a of_o offence_n towards_o god_n and_o towards_o man_n according_a to_o that_o speech_n of_o hezekiah_n isa_n 38.3_o remember_v o_o lord_n how_o i_o have_v walk_v before_o thou_o in_o truth_n and_o with_o a_o perfect_a heart_n and_o have_v do_v that_o which_o be_v good_a in_o
thy_o sight_n but_o suppose_v we_o shall_v grant_v you_o this_o it_o do_v still_o stand_v true_a that_o our_o service_n be_v in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n and_o can_v any_o man_n be_v so_o blind_a to_o think_v that_o a_o man_n shall_v serve_v in_o righteousness_n under_o god_n protection_n &_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o see_v the_o righteousness_n which_o i●_n wrought_v under_o his_o protection_n and_o if_o it_o be_v righteousness_n which_o he_o see_v than_o it_o be_v righteousness_n before_o he_o or_o in_o his_o sight_n arg._n 15._o to_o deny_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n be_v to_o deny_v one_o end_n for_o which_o christ_n die_v for_o christ_n die_v to_o bring_v we_o to_o be_v partaker_n of_o a_o pure_a &_o divine_a nature_n in_o which_o pure_a nature_n we_o be_v to_o live_v move_v and_o act_v holy_o the_o place_n by_o which_o i_o shall_v confirm_v this_o be_v in_o heb._n 9.14_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n who_o through_o the_o eternal_a spirit_n offer_v himself_o without_o spot_n god_n shall_v purge_v our_o conscience_n from_o dead_a work_n to_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n we_o be_v therefore_o wash_v from_o sin_n in_o our_o justification_n that_o we_o may_v serve_v god_n by_o sanctification_n and_o what_o spiritual_a man_n will_v call_v that_o the_o service_n of_o god_n which_o be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a for_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a be_v to_o do_v the_o devil_n service_n or_o else_o i_o be_o to_o learn_v that_o which_o we_o need_v not_o be_v teach_v to_o wit_n what_o it_o be_v to_o do_v the_o devil_n service_n arg._n 16._o the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n do_v teach_v spiritual_a man_n to_o act_v pure_o in_o their_o new_a nature_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o their_o father_n rom._n 6.4_o as_o christ_n be_v raise_v from_o the_o dead_a by_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n so_o we_o shall_v walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n to_o walk_v in_o newness_n of_o life_n be_v it_o to_o walk_v in_o the_o oldness_n of_o that_o which_o be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a let_v any_o spiritual_a man_n judge_v arg._n 17._o we_o may_v draw_v another_o argument_n from_o the_o kingly_a office_n of_o christ_n he_o as_o a_o king_n have_v a_o command_n over_o his_o subject_n but_o he_o have_v not_o the_o command_n over_o we_o when_o we_o do_v that_o which_o be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a and_o therefore_o we_o do_v something_o good_a as_o his_o subject_n in_o obedience_n to_o his_o command_n bona_fw-la bene_fw-la good_a thing_n must_v be_v do_v well_o and_o therefore_o christ_n do_v not_o only_o enable_v we_o to_o do_v that_o which_o be_v righteous_a but_o he_o do_v enable_v we_o to_o do_v it_o righteous_o why_o be_v christ_n king_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v live_v under_o his_o command_n why_o be_v we_o his_o subject_n why_o be_v we_o his_o servant_n but_o because_o we_o be_v under_o his_o command_n and_o under_o his_o law_n you_o know_v the_o jew_n say_v they_o will_v not_o have_v christ_n to_o be_v their_o king_n but_o the_o voice_n of_o every_o christian_a be_v to_o cry_v up_o christ_n to_o proclaim_v he_o king_n and_o to_o own_v he_o only_o as_o their_o ruler_n and_o christ_n be_v king_n rule_n and_o reign_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n by_o law_n and_o commandment_n and_o precious_a statute_n worthy_a of_o such_o a_o king_n now_o christ_n give_v we_o not_o a_o law_n as_o moses_n give_v a_o law_n that_o be_v grievous_a to_o those_o that_o hear_v it_o but_o christ_n give_v a_o law_n of_o love_n a_o law●_n of_o sweetness_n by_o which_o he_o rule_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o enemy_n in_o our_o heart_n what_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n in_o we_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o jesus_n christ_n but_o christ_n jesus_n sit_v upon_o his_o throne_n as_o king_n in_o our_o renew_a regenerate_v and_o enlighten_v spirit_n rule_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o our_o sin_n his_o enemy_n which_o oppose_v he_o christ_n be_v not_o such_o a_o king_n as_o other_o king_n other_o king_n make_v law_n and_o add_v penalty_n to_o their_o law_n for_o those_o that_o break_v they_o but_o they_o have_v no_o power_n to_o enable_v their_o subject_n to_o keep_v they_o but_o here_o be_v the_o privilege_n and_o prerogative_n of_o our_o king_n when_o christ_n make_v law_n he_o do_v not_o only_o give_v we_o law_n and_o bid_v we_o keep_v they_o but_o he_o have_v power_n in_o himself_o by_o which_o he_o enable_v we_o to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o command_v we_o to_o do_v if_o christ_n shall_v command_v we_o to_o love_n &_o shall_v not_o enable_v we_o to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o command_v he_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o lawgiver_n as_o moses_n that_o give_v a_o law_n but_o give_v no_o power_n to_o do_v it_o but_o christ_n be_v not_o such_o a_o lawgiver_n as_o moses_n as_o he_o be_v not_o a_o rigid_a lawgiver_n to_o bid_v saint_n do_v it_o upon_o penalty_n of_o damnation_n or_o to_o work_v for_o life_n and_o salvation_n so_o neither_o be_v he_o like_o moses_n who_o can_v give_v they_o no_o power_n but_o there_o be_v a_o power_n and_o strength_n go_v with_o christ_n command_n to_o enable_v we_o to_o do_v what_o christ_n the_o king_n command_v therefore_o if_o any_o of_o you_o give_v christ_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o grace_n by_o believe_v that_o he_o have_v abolish_v all_o your_o sin_n by_o his_o death_n be_v not_o dismay_v at_o the_o sight_n of_o your_o corruption_n fight_v the_o good_a fight_n of_o faith_n great_a be_v he_o that_o be_v in_o you_o than_o he_o that_o be_v in_o the_o world_n christ_n that_o command_v you_o to_o obey_v his_o father_n will_v enable_v you_o to_o obey_v his_o father_n christ_n reign_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n not_o only_o by_o make_v know_v to_o they_o the_o covenant_n of_o his_o own_o grace_n but_o by_o supply_v they_o with_o strength_n to_o do_v his_o will_n lord_n give_v what_o thou_o command_v say_v one_o and_o command_v what_o thou_o will_v christ_n command_v we_o what_o to_o do_v and_o give_v we_o power_n to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o command_v such_o a_o king_n be_v christ_n that_o free_v his_o people_n not_o only_o from_o the_o condemnation_n of_o sin_n but_o from_o the_o power_n and_o dominion_n of_o sin_n in_o their_o spirit_n life_n and_o conversation_n bless_a be_v god_n say_v the_o apostle_n that_o you_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o sin_n be_v they_o so_o still_o now_o they_o be_v under_o grace_n no_o but_o be_v make_v free_a from_o sin_n you_o be_v the_o servant_n of_o righteousness_n sin_n shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o you_o why_o you_o have_v a_o new_a king_n you_o be_v under_o grace_n you_o be_v under_o king_n jesus_n if_o a_o tyrant_n shall_v tyrannize_v over_o subject_n and_o depose_v their_o lawful_a king_n if_o this_o king_n afterward_o shall_v overthrow_v this_o tyrant_n and_o deliver_v his_o subject_n from_o tyranny_n and_o bondage_n by_o overcome_a the_o tyrant_n will_v he_o suffer_v this_o tyrant_n to_o tyrannize_v over_o they_o or_o his_o people_n to_o be_v under_o the_o law_n of_o the_o tyrant_n we_o be_v under_o satan_n the_o tyrant_n under_o his_o law_n and_o command_n under_o the_o law_n of_o sin_n and_o concupiscence_n but_o christ_n come_v and_o overcome_v the_o tyrant_n that_o rule_v tyrannical_o in_o our_o heart_n and_o will_v he_o suffer_v that_o tyrant_n still_o to_o rule_v we_o by_o those_o command_n which_o he_o give_v we_o when_o we_o be_v in_o bondage_n to_o he_o no_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v under_o the_o bondage_n of_o the_o flesh_n if_o we_o understand_v the_o liberty_n of_o grace_n and_o of_o the_o spirit_n the_o apostle_n say_v that_o we_o do_v not_o live_v nor_o eat_v nor_o drink_v nor_o do_v any_o sh_n to_o ourselves_o because_o christ_n die_v and_o rose_n and_o revive_v that_o he_o may_v be_v lord_n of_o quick_a and_o dead_a rom._n 14.8_o 9_o christ_n die_v and_o rose_n that_o he_o may_v be_v lord_n and_o king_n and_o reign_v and_o set_v up_o his_o sceptre_n of_o holiness_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n this_o be_v prophesy_v in_o psal_n 110.3_o thy_o people_n shall_v be_v willing_a in_o the_o day_n of_o thy_o power_n when_o christ_n as_o king_n come_v with_o power_n his_o people_n shall_v be_v willing_a christ_n bid_v they_o believe_v and_o they_o believe_v he_o bid_v they_o love_n and_o they_o do_v love_n they_o run_v through_o fire_n and_o water_n they_o lay_v down_o their_o honour_n and_o riches_n at_o his_o foot_n and_o love_v not_o their_o life_n unto_o the_o death_n object_n the_o enable_v of_o christ_n in_o work_v be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o extent_n with_o his_o command_n answ_n in_o the_o spiritual_a and_o regenerate_a part_n the_o power_n of_o christ_n be_v as_o large_a as_o
his_o command_n the_o fail_v be_v not_o from_o the_o new_a but_o the_o old_a man_n the_o whole_a man_n or_o person_n be_v under_o the_o command_n so_o that_o a_o man_n yea_o every_o man_n do_v sin_n because_o he_o do_v not_o do_v in_o his_o person_n as_o he_o be_v a_o man_n what_o be_v command_v charge_v the_o fault_n where_o it_o be_v to_o be_v charge_v upon_o the_o flesh_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o man_n sin_n and_o then_o look_v upon_o grace_n which_o have_v abolish_v sin_n and_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o new_a man_n conformable_a to_o the_o will_n of_o god_n and_o the_o man_n good_a and_o holy_a in_o part_n to_o wit_n in_o his_o regenerate_v part_n it_o be_v further_a object_v that_o christ_n bid_v we_o to_o cleanse_v ourselves_o from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n which_o no_o man_n do_v it_o be_v grant_v and_o therefore_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o every_o man_n sin_v if_o we_o take_v he_o physical_o but_o as_o far_o as_o we_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n we_o be_v cleanse_v from_o all_o filthiness_n of_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n so_o that_o the_o new_a man_n do_v fulfil_v it_o and_o christ_n do_v reign_v in_o he_o though_o the_o flesh_n prove_v a_o traitor_n and_o rebellious_a against_o his_o command_n arg._n 18._o another_o argument_n may_v be_v bring_v from_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n if_o this_o be_v true_a that_o all_o the_o work_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v in_o their_o formality_n sin_n this_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o image_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v a_o image_n of_o unholinesse_n and_o sin_n i_o ground_n my_o argument_n upon_o that_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n 2_o cor._n 3.18_o we_o all_o with_o open_a face_n behold_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v change_v into_o the_o same_o image_n from_o glory_n to_o glory_n even_o as_o by_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n here_o the_o apostle_n show_v that_o the_o saint_n be_v change_v into_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n now_o if_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o sin_n and_o unholinesse_n &_o sinfulness_n in_o those_o who_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o spiritual_a as_o some_o conceive_v it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n into_o which_o they_o be_v change_v must_v be_v a_o image_n of_o unholinesse_n if_o my_o love_n be_v unholinesse_n i_o be_o change_v to_o that_o image_n of_o love_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o so_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o image_n of_o christ_n do_v consist_v in_o unholinesse_n object_n if_o there_o be_v perfect_a sanctification_n in_o the_o new_a man_n than_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v by_o it_o answ_n i_o deny_v that_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v we_o shall_v have_v perfect_a sanctification_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o yet_o you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v acquit_v from_o our_o sin_n by_o it_o which_o we_o have_v commit_v upon_o earth_n but_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n 2._o we_o be_v justify_v before_o sancification_n and_o therefore_o it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o it_o because_o that_o be_v do_v before_o the_o other_o be_v wrought_v in_o we_o 3._o that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v justify_v by_o his_o sanctification_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v be_v so_o whole_o sanctify_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o sin_n in_o the_o man_n our_o good_a work_n will_v not_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o our_o bad_a work_n a_o traitor_n for_o a_o act_n of_o treason_n may_v be_v condemn_v by_o his_o prince_n though_o he_o have_v do_v he_o much_o good_a service_n if_o a_o man_n will_v seek_v justification_n by_o the_o law_n who_o be_v sanctify_v in_o part_n the_o law_n will_v condemn_v he_o for_o his_o sin_n in_o his_o unregenerate_v part_n take_v no_o notice_n of_o any_o sufficiency_n in_o his_o sanctification_n to_o free_v he_o from_o condemnation_n for_o his_o sin_n in_o the_o unregenerate_v part_n arg._n 19_o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o the_o justify_v man_n be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a do_v make_v divers_a place_n of_o scripture_n irreconcilable_a man_n shall_v never_o be_v well_o able_a to_o reconcile_v many_o place_n of_o scripture_n who_o swallow_v this_o as_o a_o truth_n that_o whatsoever_o work_n be_v now_o do_v in_o the_o saint_n be_v nothing_o but_o sin_n or_o sinful_a for_o instance_n in_o one_o place_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o disclaim_v our_o work_n and_o to_o account_v all_o our_o righteousness_n as_o filthy_a rag_n to_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o justifi_v the_o ungodly_a and_o in_o another_o place_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v redeem_v from_o all_o iniquity_n that_o we_o may_v be_v zealous_a of_o good_a work_n tit._n 2._o and_o we_o be_v the_o work_n manship_n of_o god_n create_v in_o christ_n jesus_n to_o good_a work_n eph._n 2._o by_o what_o i_o have_v deliver_v they_o be_v easy_o reconcileable_a to_o wit_n by_o distinguish_v as_o the_o scripture_n do_v concern_v good_a work_n thus_o that_o all_o the_o work_n of_o man_n under_o the_o law_n be_v but_o splendid_a and_o shine_a sin_n and_o that_o the_o spiritual_a work_n of_o a_o spiritual_a man_n be_v good_a and_o not_o sin_n or_o sinful_a in_o their_o nature_n not_o that_o the_o scripture_n make_v these_o good_a work_n that_o flow_v from_o the_o spiritual_a man_n the_o cause_n or_o the_o matter_n of_o our_o justification_n but_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o consequent_n of_o our_o justification●_n it_o be_v a_o speech_n of_o luther_n worthy_a to_o be_v writte●_n in_o letter_n of_o gold_n that_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o all_o the_o riches_n of_o it_o be_v of_o no_o worth_n in_o comparison_n of_o good_a work_n flow_v from_o faith_n and_o wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o his_o people_n which_o how_o it_o can_v be_v make_v good_a i_o know_v not_o if_o that_o be_v true_a which_o he_o and_o some_o other_o protestant_a writer_n affirm_v that_o omn●_fw-la bonum_fw-la secundum_fw-la judicium_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la mortale_fw-la peccatum_fw-la every_o good_a work_n of_o a_o regenerate_a man_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n be_v a_o mortal_a sin_n that_o which_o be_v moral_o evil_a be_v not_o so_o good_a as_o any_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o moral_o evil_a that_o be_v the_o great_a evil_n which_o be_v moral_o evil_a i_o have_v know_v some_o professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o have_v fall_v to_o familisme_n and_o atheistical_a opinion_n and_o be_v ask_v why_o they_o do_v leave_v the_o gospel_n they_o have_v answer_v that_o they_o can_v never_o reconcile_v the_o scripture_n concern_v work_n to_o other_o place_n while_o they_o be_v professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n their_o meaning_n be_v while_o they_o be_v professor_n upon_o these_o principle_n by_o which_o they_o be_v teach_v to_o look_v upon_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o they_o as_o sin_n and_o sinful_a that_o which_o be_v frequent_o assert_v by_o some_o mr._n eatoon_n honycomb_n and_o other_o that_o they_o be_v good_a to_o men-ward_n will_v not_o make_v up_o the_o breach_n the_o apostle_n peter_n speak_v of_o a_o meek_a &_o quiet_a spirit_n which_o be_v the_o ornament_n of_o the_o hide_a man_n of_o the_o heart_n say_v that_o it_o be_v of_o great_a price_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 3.4_o the_o apostle_n speak_v of_o his_o sincerity_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o afraid_a to_o bring_v it_o into_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n 2_o cor._n 2.17_o and_o john_n say_v 1_o joh._n 3.22_o that_o whatsoever_o we_o ask_v we_o receive_v of_o he_o because_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o do_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v please_v in_o his_o sight_n and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o mean_a believe_v only_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o next_o verse_n where_o he_o say_v that_o this_o be_v his_o commandment_n that_o we_o believe_v on_o the_o name_n of_o his_o son_n jesus_n christ_n and_o love_v one_o another_o and_o to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o objection_n which_o be_v usual_o bring_v against_o this_o truth_n to_o wit_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o do_v as_o in_o god_n precept_n or_o command_v and_o not_o as_o do_v by_o we_o he_o say_v that_o we_o receive_v what_o we_o ask_v because_o we_o do_v what_o be_v please_v in_o his_o sight_n i_o must_v profess_v to_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n that_o this_o distinction_n have_v give_v i_o a_o great_a light_n in_o the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o this_o i_o be_o inform_v that_o i_o be_o justify_v without_o holiness_n or_o sanctification_n and_o yet_o that_o without_o holiness_n no_o man_n shall_v see_v the_o lord_n heb._n 12.14_o arg._n 20._o this_o opinion_n that_o the_o good_a work_n
of_o a_o man_n bear_v of_o god_n be_v sin_n or_o sinful_a do_v overthrow_v the_o distinction_n which_o be_v warrant_v by_o many_o thousand_o place_n of_o scripture_n between_o good_a work_n and_o bad_a work_n and_o do_v draw_v a_o curse_n upon_o the_o doer_n of_o it_o can_v evil_a be_v good_a or_o good_a evil_n woe_n unto_o they_o that_o call_v evil_a good_a and_o good_a evil_n that_o put_v darkness_n for_o light_n and_o light_n for_o darkness_n that_o put_v bitter_a for_o sweet_a and_o sweet_a for_o bitter_a isa_n 5.20_o what_o else_o do_v they_o do_v who_o plainley_o aver_v that_o every_o good_a work_n be_v evil_a object_n do_v we_o deny_v the_o difference_n between_o white_a and_o black_a because_o we_o say_v that_o in_o most_o white_a body_n there_o be_v a_o mixture_n of_o some_o blackness_n with_o the_o whiteness_n etc._n etc._n answ_n if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o mixture_n of_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n and_o that_o which_o be_v of_o the_o flesh_n that_o that_o which_o be_v spiritual_a shall_v be_v make_v fleshly_a by_o it_o there_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v some_o strength_n in_o this_o objection_n but_o until_o that_o such_o a_o mixture_n be_v prove_v by_o plain_a scripture_n we_o shall_v think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o affirm_v that_o such_o similitude_n which_o have_v not_o their_o foundation_n upon_o a_o principle_n of_o truth_n do_v prove_v nothing_o arg._n 21._o it_o take_v away_o the_o difference_n between_o a_o sanctify_a and_o unsanctified_a man_n which_o be_v a_o distinction_n which_o do_v stand_v firm_a upon_o the_o basis_n of_o the_o scripture_n of_o truth_n the_o apostle_n do_v plain_o lay_v down_o this_o distinction_n 1_o cor._n 6.11_o where_o he_o inform_v we_o of_o the_o condition_n of_o the_o corinthian_n before_o conversion_n to_o wit_n that_o they_o be_v thief_n adulteress_n and_o the_o like_a such_o be_v some_o of_o you_o and_o then_o set_v forth_o their_o bless_a condition_n after_o conversion_n but_o you_o be_v wash_v but_o you_o be_v sanctify_v and_o do_v second_o this_o truth_n with_o his_o own_o experience_n acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v a_o real_a change_n wrought_v in_o himself_o after_o conversion_n by_o sanctification_n 2_o tim._n 1._o i_o be_v say_v he_o a_o persecuter_n a_o blasphemer_n injurious_a but_o the_o grace_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v exceed_v abundant_a with_o faith_n &_o love_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n not_o with_o faith_n only_o but_o love_v also_o if_o god_n have_v pull_v you_o out_o of_o the_o fire_n of_o sin_n and_o draw_v you_o as_o firebrand_n out_o of_o hell_n and_o bring_v you_o into_o the_o glorious_a kingdom_n of_o his_o son_n you_o be_v able_a to_o profess_v the_o same_o sanctify_a change_n in_o yourselves_o it_o be_v a_o dead_a faith_n which_o be_v not_o accompany_v with_o sanctification_n and_o good_a work_n as_o soon_o may_v a_o dead_a horse_n carry_v a_o man_n as_o a_o dead_a faith_n save_o he_o object_n this_o be_v a_o slander_n we_o do_v not_o deny_v sanctification_n answ_n if_o you_o acknowledge_v sanctification_n and_o a_o sanctify_a change_n you_o contradict_v yourselves_o for_o how_o can_v that_o make_v a_o sanctify_a change_n in_o we_o which_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o sin_n or_o sinful_a i_o shall_v be_v glad_a if_o you_o will_v stand_v to_o a_o inward_a change_n by_o love_n and_o sanctification_n but_o some_o there_o be_v who_o have_v affirm_v that_o the_o distinction_n between_o a_o regenerate_v a_o and_o unregenerate_v man_n be_v but_o a_o legal_a distinction_n arg._n 22._o the_o holy_a spirit_n which_o be_v promise_v to_o we_o and_o dwell_v in_o we_o do_v plain_o demonstrate_v this_o point_n for_o as_o the_o spirit_n be_v holy_a formal_o in_o itself_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n essence_n and_o be_v so_o it_o be_v effective_o holy_a because_o it_o make_v that_o man_n holy_a who_o be_v former_o sinful_a if_o thou_o be_v nothing_o but_o darkness_n if_o god_n convert_v thou_o thou_o will_v have_v a_o glorious_a light_n in_o thy_o understanding_n if_o thou_o have_v nothing_o but_o unholinesse_n in_o thy_o will_n if_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n live_v in_o thou_o it_o will_v be_v a_o spirit_n of_o holiness_n a_o spirit_n that_o will_v show_v thou_o what_o be_v of_o the_o flesh_n and_o what_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n a_o spirit_n check_v thou_o if_o thou_o step_v aside_o into_o the_o way_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o a_o spirit_n lead_v thou_o into_o the_o path_n of_o holiness_n as_o the_o psalmist_n say_v thy_o spirit_n be_v good_a lead_v i_o into_o the_o land_n of_o holiness_n and_o uprightness_n therefore_o those_o that_o do_v not_o find_v that_o spirit_n lead_v they_o into_o the_o path_n and_o way_n of_o holiness_n those_o man_n have_v receive_v a_o counterfeit_a spirit_n to_o delude_v they_o and_o not_o the_o true_a spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n object_n the_o spirit_n be_v good_a but_o our_o action_n be_v evil_a by_o the_o adherence_n of_o sin_n in_o we_o that_o holy_a thing_n may_v be_v defile_v be_v plain_a by_o exod._n 28.36.38_o aaron_n have_v his_o plate_n upon_o his_o forehead_n be_v to_o bear_v the_o iniquity_n of_o the_o holy_a thing_n answ_n 1._o though_o sin_n and_o holiness_n be_v in_o the_o same_o man_n yet_o i_o deny_v that_o sin_n by_o any_o adhere_n to_o holiness_n in_o we_o do_v change_v holiness_n into_o the_o nature_n of_o it_o but_o what_o be_v of_o the_o spirit_n in_o we_o do_v retain_v its_o spiritual_a nature_n and_o what_o be_v of_o the_o flesh_n do_v retain_v its_o fleshly_a nature_n 2._o the_o scripture_n produce_v do_v prove_v that_o in_o do_v of_o holy_a duty_n we_o sin_n and_o that_o jesus_n christ_n do_v bear_v those_o sin_n which_o we_o have_v grant_v unto_o you_o before_o but_o that_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o we_o be_v those_o sin_n can_v be_v prove_v from_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n nor_o from_o anyother_n scripture_n which_o i_o know_v this_o still_o do_v remain_v to_o be_v prove_v arg._n 23._o there_o may_v be_v another_o argument_n draw_v from_o that_o place_n of_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v the_o spirit_n bear_v witness_n with_o our_o spirit_n that_o we_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n rom._n 8.16_o the_o spirit_n can_v bear_v witness_n to_o our_o old_a dark_a profane_a spirit_n for_o the_o natural_a man_n receive_v not_o the_o thing_n of_o the_o spirit_n for_o they_o be_v foolishness_n to_o he_o therefore_o it_o must_v be_v to_o our_o spirit_n enlighten_v renew_v and_o fill_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o there_o be_v something_o in_o a_o saint_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v sin_n and_o sinful_a object_n this_o be_v true_a but_o we_o be_v not_o renew_v perfect_o which_o be_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v prove_v answ_n perfection_n in_o scripture_n be_v oppose_v to_o that_o which_o be_v more_o perfect_a and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o do_v not_o affirm_v that_o a_o man_n be_v so_o perfect_o renew_v as_o he_o shall_v be_v 1_o cor._n 13._o 2._o perfection_n be_v oppose_v to_o that_o which_o be_v sinful_a luke_n 1_o and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o say_v that_o he_o be_v perfect_o renew_v that_o be_v he_o be_v holy_o &_o not_o sinful_o renew_v arg._n 24._o i_o do_v ground_n my_o next_o argument_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n rom._n 14._o last_o whatsoever_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n be_v sin_n and_o therefore_o that_o which_o be_v do_v in_o faith_n be_v not_o sin_n if_o we_o deny_v this_o we_o shall_v take_v away_o the_o difference_n between_o do_v good_a work_n in_o faith_n and_o do_v good_a work_n without_o faith_n if_o both_o of_o they_o be_v alike_o sinful_a or_o sin_n and_o therefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o be_v do_v in_o faith_n be_v not_o sin_n without_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o please_v god_n and_o therefore_o by_o faith_n it_o be_v possible_a to_o please_v he_o by_o do_v good_a work_n arg._n 25._o another_o argument_n may_v be_v draw_v from_o that_o place_n 2_o cor._n 13._o where_o the_o apostle_n make_v the_o comparison_n between_o faith_n hope_n and_o love_n and_o prefer_v love_n before_o faith_n &_o hope_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o love_n be_v more_o permanent_a and_o of_o long_a continuance_n than_o faith_n and_o hope_v when_o a_o man_n come_v to_o heaven_n he_o cease_v to_o live_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n for_o than_o he_o shall_v live_v the_o life_n of_o sight_n and_o vision_n he_o cease_v to_o hope_v for_o he_o enjoy_v that_o which_o he_o hope_v for_o but_o love_n shall_v continue_v therefore_o he_o say_v that_o love_n that_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n be_v great_a than_o faith_n in_o respect_n of_o its_o continuance_n that_o which_o remain_v and_o endure_v after_o this_o life_n
fear_v our_o rejoice_v our_o pray_n if_o so_o then_o be_v we_o in_o this_o work_n either_o perfect_a or_o imperfect_a agent_n if_o perfect_a agent_n then_o be_v there_o no_o ignorance_n in_o our_o understanding_n no_o depravation_n in_o our_o will_n no_o perverseness_n in_o our_o affection_n the_o contrary_a whereof_o all_o the_o true_o faithful_a find_v by_o experience_n and_o the_o scripture_n abundant_o testify_v but_o if_o we_o be_v imperfect_a agent_n then_o can_v perfection_n come_v out_o of_o imperfection_n no_o effect_n can_v be_v better_o than_o its_o cause_n ans_fw-fr 1_o the_o efficiency_n of_o the_o first_o cause_n do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o efficiency_n of_o the_o second_o cause_n in_o god_n we_o live_v &_o move_v yet_o it_o be_v not_o god_n that_o move_v he_o though_o he_o move_v all_o thing_n can_v be_v move_v himself_o immobilis_fw-la movens_fw-la omne_fw-la aug._n so_o it_o be_v not_o god_n that_o repent_v but_o we_o repent_v the_o ignorance_n of_o which_o truth_n have_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o wicked_a mystery_n of_o familisme_n which_o my_o soul_n abhor_v and_o therefore_o we_o shall_v agree_v in_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v implicit_o lay_v down_o in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o your_o dilemma_n 2_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a grant_n that_o man_n be_v a_o imperfect_a agent_n i_o answer_v that_o if_o we_o take_v perfect_a here_o in_o this_o point_n as_o it_o be_v oppose_v to_o that_o which_o be_v sinful_a so_o many_o saint_n do_v grant_v and_o all_o shall_v and_o will_v as_o more_o light_n be_v beam_v into_o their_o soul_n grant_v it_o that_o the_o sanctify_a and_o spiritual_a man_n consider_v as_o far_o forth_o as_o he_o be_v a_o spiritual_a man_n do_v work_n as_o a_o perfect_a agent_n not_o as_o a_o unholy_a but_o a_o holy_a man_n and_o therefore_o according_a to_o your_o rule_n his_o action_n must_v be_v spiritual_a and_o holy_a and_o this_o may_v give_v a_o answer_n to_o that_o argument_n which_o be_v bring_v from_o job_n who_o can_v bring_v a_o clean_a thing_n out_o of_o a_o unclean_a job_n 14.4_o 3_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o no_o effect_n can_v be_v better_o than_o its_o cause_n etc._n etc._n this_o be_v not_o universal_o true_a a_o man_n imperfect_a by_o the_o want_n of_o his_o arm_n or_o leg_n may_v beget_v a_o child_n which_o be_v perfect_a and_o have_v its_o limb_n but_o this_o not_o be_v much_o to_o the_o purpose_n i_o shall_v not_o contend_v about_o it_o arg._n 12._o if_o the_o new_a man_n never_o sin_n christ_n come_v not_o to_o save_v the_o new_a man_n for_o he_o come_v only_o to_o save_v sinner_n answ_n the_o new_a man_n take_v in_o this_o spiritual_a and_o theologicoll_a sense_n be_v not_o the_o object_n of_o salvation_n but_o a_o elect_a person_n guilty_a and_o sinful_a in_o himself_o and_o the_o new_a creation_n be_v a_o bless_a consequent_a of_o our_o redemption_n by_o christ_n but_o i_o have_v sufficient_o answer_v this_o before_o arg._n 13._o that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n agreeable_a to_o the_o holy_a law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o perfect_a and_o without_o sin_n for_o sin_n be_v the_o transgression_n or_o disagreement_n with_o the_o law_n of_o god_n 1_o john_n 3.4_o but_o the_o best_a of_o a_o regenerate_a man_n action_n be_v not_o agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n of_o god_n be_v not_o do_v with_o all_o the_o heart_n with_o all_o the_o soul_n with_o all_o the_o understanding_n and_o with_o all_o the_o strength_n mat._n 22.37_o deut._n 6.5_o ans_fw-fr 1._o by_o this_o argument_n you_o will_v bring_v the_o spiritual_a man_n to_o judge_v himself_o by_o the_o law_n or_o old_a covenant_n but_o he_o be_v better_a teach_v by_o the_o spirit_n and_o as_o he_o do_v not_o put_v his_o person_n under_o the_o old_a covenant_n so_o do_v he_o not_o judge_v his_o action_n by_o the_o old_a covenant_n but_o by_o the_o new_a covenant_n of_o grace_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n gal._n 5.18_o if_o you_o be_v lead_v by_o the_o spirit_n you_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n and_o thus_o look_v upon_o what_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n under_o the_o new_a covenant_n he_o see_v it_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n agreeable_a to_o the_o law_n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n not_o that_o christ_n do_v require_v less_o holiness_n than_o be_v require_v in_o the_o old_a covenant_n but_o because_o he_o give_v we_o more_o grace_n enable_v we_o to_o keep_v his_o commandment_n by_o the_o keep_n of_o which_o we_o know_v in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o we_o true_o know_v he_o and_o the_o commandment_n of_o christ_n be_v keep_v by_o the_o saint_n evangelical_o two_o manner_n of_o way_n 1._o by_o believe_v for_o justification_n 2._o by_o holy_a walk_n for_o sanctification_n not_o that_o we_o can_v keep_v they_o by_o holy_a walk_n but_o as_o we_o walk_v in_o the_o light_n of_o our_o justification_n and_o thus_o he_o be_v as_o well_o able_a to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n of_o love_n as_o the_o commandment_n of_o faith_n suppose_v a_o king_n shall_v pardon_v a_o traitor_n and_o shall_v give_v he_o a_o assurance_n of_o pardon_n for_o all_o future_a treason_n which_o he_o may_v run_v into_o and_o have_v power_n to_o enable_v he_o in_o some_o thing_n and_o sometime_o to_o be_v obedient_a unto_o he_o as_o a_o loyal_a subject_n will_v you_o not_o say_v that_o this_o subject_n be_v a_o loyal_a subject_n all_o his_o traitorous_a act_n forgive_v and_o his_o loyal_a obedience_n to_o the_o command_n of_o his_o sovereign_n be_v accept_v thus_o it_o be_v between_o god_n and_o we_o he_o forgive_v all_o the_o treason_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o accept_v of_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o spirit_n god_n do_v account_n that_o all_o the_o command_n of_o the_o law_n be_v fulfil_v by_o we_o when_o that_o which_o be_v not_o do_v be_v pardon_v omnia_fw-la tunc_fw-la facta_fw-la deputantur_fw-la cum_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la fit_a ignoscitur_fw-la which_o be_v true_a in_o a_o sense_n in_o reference_n to_o sanctification_n as_o well_o as_o to_o justification_n and_o a_o spiritual_a man_n thus_o look_v upon_o himself_o in_o the_o glass_n of_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n do_v know_v that_o he_o be_v a_o keeper_n of_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n and_o can_v say_v with_o the_o psalmist_n ps_n 119.10_o with_o my_o whole_a heart_n i_o have_v seek_v thou_o o_o let_v i_o not_o wander_v from_o thy_o commandment_n all_o his_o defect_n and_o imperfection_n with_o the_o commit_n of_o evil_n and_o omit_v good_a in_o the_o flesh_n be_v do_v away_o and_o that_o which_o be_v good_a be_v account_v so_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v present_v unto_o he_o in_o this_o covenant_n so_o speak_v you_o and_o so_o do_v as_o they_o that_o shall_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o law_n of_o liberty_n say_v james_n jam._n 2.12_o as_o god_n do_v judge_v our_o person_n by_o the_o law_n of_o liberty_n or_o the_o law_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n so_o he_o do_v judge_n our_o action_n and_o thus_o they_o be_v perfect_a and_o the_o law_n of_o the_o new_a covenant_n be_v not_o only_a faith_n for_o justification_n but_o love_n for_o sanctification_n and_o thus_o this_o place_n be_v expound_v by_o the_o learned_a paraeus_n arg._n 14._o paul_n do_v not_o think_v himself_o to_o have_v full_o apprehend_v or_o to_o be_v already_o perfect_a but_o strive_v forward_o phil._n 3.12_o 13._o which_o can_v be_v say_v of_o the_o old_a man_n but_o only_o of_o the_o new_a man_n for_o the_o old_a man_n do_v not_o strive_v forward_o for_o the_o prize_n of_o the_o high_a call_n answ_n though_o paul_n have_v not_o attain_v to_o that_o perfection_n which_o he_o look_v for_o at_o the_o resurrection_n yet_o he_o have_v attain_v to_o a_o perfection_n of_o part_n which_o be_v oppose_v to_o sinfulness_n which_o do_v appear_v by_o what_o follow_v in_o the_o 15._o vers_fw-la of_o the_o same_o chap._n where_o he_o do_v acknowledge_v the_o saint_n in_o this_o sense_n to_o be_v perfect_a with_o which_o verse_n i_o shall_v put_v a_o period_n to_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o objection_n as_o many_o as_o be_v perfect_a be_v thus_o mind_v &_o if_o in_o any_o thing_n you_o be_v otherwise_o mind_v god_n shall_v reveal_v even_o this_o unto_o you_o use_v 2._o the_o lesson_n which_o god_n have_v teach_v i_o from_o these_o meditation_n have_v be_v very_o powerful_a by_o his_o grace_n for_o the_o convince_a i_o of_o sin_n in_o a_o gospel-way_n and_o for_o the_o humble_v of_o my_o soul_n under_o his_o mighty_a hand_n by_o see_v the_o huge_a mass_n of_o corruption_n which_o be_v in_o the_o flesh_n &_o that_o little_a quantity_n of_o pure_a gold_n which_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n it_o
a_o heap_n worth_a nothing_o yet_o he_o know_v by_o the_o art_n of_o the_o refyner_n to_o bring_v a_o choice_n and_o precious_a vessel_n out_o of_o that_o dust_n so_o though_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n have_v lie_v as_o a_o heap_n of_o dust_n and_o we_o see_v no_o glory_n in_o it_o yet_o god_n the_o refyner_n of_o heaven_n by_o the_o power_n of_o his_o arm_n be_v able_a to_o extract_v the_o file_n and_o dust_n of_o his_o saint_n out_o of_o the_o earth_n and_o to_o restore_v their_o dust_n to_o a_o immortal_a spiritual_a and_o glorious_a body_n look_v to_o the_o power_n of_o god_n nothing_o will_v be_v impossible_a therefore_o when_o the_o sadducee_n cavil_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n our_o saviour_n strike_v at_o the_o root_n of_o their_o error_n which_o be_v this_o because_o they_o question_v the_o power_n of_o god_n concern_v this_o you_o err_v say_v he_o not_o know_v the_o scripture_n nor_o the_o power_n of_o god_n mat._n 22._o qui_fw-la potest_fw-la facere_fw-la potest_fw-la reficere_fw-la etc._n etc._n say_v tertullian_n he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o make_v the_o body_n out_o of_o nothing_o be_v able_a to_o remake_v it_o he_o that_o be_v able_a to_o give_v a_o be_v out_o of_o no_o be_v be_v able_a to_o give_v a_o be_v out_o of_o that_o that_o have_v a_o be_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o make_v a_o thing_n out_o of_o that_o that_o have_v a_o be_v then_o out_o of_o that_o that_o have_v no_o be_v god_n have_v do_v the_o first_o why_o shall_v we_o distrust_v he_o concern_v the_o second_o therefore_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o apostle_n when_o he_o preach_v this_o doctrine_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v raise_v and_o in_o our_o body_n make_v like_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o know_v that_o there_o will_v be_v carnal_a objection_n arise_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o man_n against_o this_o doctrine_n he_o present_o fit_v and_o shape_n a_o answer_n for_o it_o from_o the_o power_n of_o god_n phil._n 3._o ult_n we_o look_v for_o the_o saviour_n the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n that_o it_o may_v be_v fashion_v like_o unto_o his_o glorious_a body_n according_a to_o the_o work_n whereby_o he_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v even_o all_o thing_n to_o himself_o here_o that_o the_o mouth_n of_o unbelief_n and_o carnal_a reason_n may_v be_v stop_v he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o will_v make_v our_o body_n like_v unto_o his_o glorious_a body_n and_o question_v not_o but_o he_o will_v do_v it_o for_o he_o will_v do_v it_o by_o his_o mighty_a power_n by_o which_o he_o be_v able_a to_o subdue_v all_o thing_n to_o himself_o thus_o far_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o sort_n of_o adversary_n the_o objection_n of_o the_o spiritual_a enemy_n or_o rather_o diabolical_a enemy_n though_o they_o pretend_v to_o spirituality_n be_v draw_v from_o scripture_n and_o this_o be_v no_o wonder_n for_o their_o father_n the_o devil_n do_v quote_v scripture_n sometime_o too_o the_o first_o place_n which_o they_o allege_v be_v in_o the_o 1_o cor._n 15.50_o flesh_n and_o blood_n can_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v corruption_n inherit_v incorruption_n from_o whence_o they_o conclude_v that_o our_o corruptible_a and_o fleshly_a body_n shall_v not_o be_v raise_v and_o therefore_o that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o resurrection_n to_o be_v expect_v which_o we_o wait_v for_o but_o that_o the_o apostle_n in_o this_o chapter_n and_o all_o other_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n do_v treat_v of_o it_o spiritual_o &_o allegorical_o and_o that_o he_o never_o do_v hold_v forth_o such_o a_o carnal_a and_o gross_a resurrection_n as_o we_o in_o our_o muddy_a brain_n do_v gross_o apprehend_v he_o do_v in_o answer_n to_o which_o objection_n we_o shall_v grant_v that_o the_o apostle_n in_o sundry_a place_n do_v speak_v of_o a_o resurrection_n figurative_o as_o in_o the_o 3._o col._n 1._o if_o you_o be_v rise_v with_o christ_n silly_a those_o thing_n which_o be_v above_o where_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o resurrection_n to_o a_o new_a life_n in_o the_o spirit_n by_o faith_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n we_o grant_v that_o saint_n be_v already_o rise_v there_o be_v no_o happiness_n for_o such_o at_o the_o second_o resurrection_n hereafter_o who_o be_v not_o first_o raise_v here_o and_o make_v partaker_n of_o the_o first_o resurrection_n yet_o this_o do_v not_o weaken_v our_o assertion_n nor_o overthrow_v our_o faith_n and_o therefore_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o put_v in_o a_o answer_n to_o their_o objection_n first_o it_o be_v true_a flesh_n and_o blood_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n what_o do_v he_o mean_a he_o mean_n sinful_a flesh_n and_o blood_n shall_v not_o inherit_v whatsoever_o be_v sin_n and_o flesh_n in_o this_o respect_n shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n second_o flesh_n and_o blood_n may_v be_v take_v for_o the_o weakness_n and_o infirmity_n that_o cleave_v to_o our_o body_n for_o the_o present_a and_o flesh_n and_o blood_n our_o body_n of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n if_o we_o look_v on_o they_o in_o their_o frailty_n infirmity_n and_o weakness_n so_o they_o shall_v not_o inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n but_o otherwise_o it_o be_v certain_a these_o body_n which_o be_v flesh_n and_o blood_n shall_v inherit_v the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n for_o as_o our_o lord_n christ_n be_v now_o in_o glory_n in_o the_o same_o body_n though_o it_o be_v a_o spiritual_a glorious_a body_n in_o heaven_n in_o which_o he_o suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n so_o we_o who_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v be_v raise_v go_v to_o heaven_n and_o enjoy_v god_n in_o happiness_n in_o these_o very_a body_n that_o we_o carry_v about_o we_o we_o shall_v see_v god_n with_o these_o eye_n and_o no_o other_o we_o shall_v have_v the_o same_o foot_n hand_n and_o member_n etc._n etc._n and_o though_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o sin_n frailty_n weakness_n or_o infirmity_n no_o imperfection_n lameness_n deafness_n or_o blindness_n yet_o the_o same_o numericall_a body_n shall_v be_v raise_v again_o and_o if_o god_n will_v but_o open_v their_o eye_n to_o read_v and_o understand_v what_o be_v speak_v they_o shall_v have_v a_o answer_n from_o the_o pen_n of_o he_o who_o they_o through_o their_o blindness_n do_v misunderstand_v in_o the_o 53._o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n this_o corruptible_a must_v put_v on_o incorruption_n and_o this_o mortal_a must_v put_v on_o immortality_n the_o same_o mortal_a body_n by_o he_o who_o be_v immortal_a must_v be_v make_v immortal_a and_o incorruptible_a this_o be_v the_o confession_n of_o the_o african_a church_n credimus_fw-la resurrectionem_fw-la carnis_fw-la huius_fw-la we_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o this_o flesh_n which_o be_v consonant_n to_o the_o truth_n deliver_v by_o paul_n 2_o cor._n 5.10_o we_o must_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o judgement_n seat_n of_o christ_n that_o every_o one_o may_v receive_v the_o thing_n do_v in_o his_o body_n according_a to_o that_o he_o have_v do_v whether_o it_o be_v good_a or_o bad_a the_o same_o person_n must_v appear_v we_o that_o consist_v of_o a_o material_a body_n and_o spiritual_a soul_n must_v appear_v in_o the_o same_o body_n and_o soul_n or_o else_o it_o be_v not_o we_o that_o shall_v appear_v but_o some_o body_n else_o which_o shall_v appear_v which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o mind_n of_o god_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o this_o place_n the_o second_o objection_n which_o they_o bring_v be_v this_o that_o we_o that_o profess_v christ_n and_o a_o resurrection_n by_o he_o in_o this_o way_n be_v carnal_a and_o know_v christ_n after_o the_o flesh_n whereas_o the_o apostle_n say_v in_o the_o 2_o cor._n 5.16_o that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v know_v so_o no_o more_o to_o which_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o be_v one_o of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d one_o of_o the_o thing_n hard_a to_o be_v understand_v in_o paul_n which_o peter_n speak_v of_o 2_o pet._n 3.16_o which_o they_o be_v unstable_a wrest_v as_o they_o do_v other_o scripture_n unto_o their_o own_o destruction_n paul_n have_v no_o such_o meaning_n which_o they_o carnal_o draw_v from_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o word_n which_o will_v appear_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o christ_n which_o he_o preach_v who_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n rom._n 1.3_o crucify_a in_o the_o flesh_n for_o our_o sin_n 2._o cor._n 13.4_o rise_v from_o the_o dead_a for_o our_o justification_n rom._n 4.25_o 1_o cor._n 15.20_o ascend_v in_o our_o humane_a nature_n in_o which_o he_o suffer_v and_o descend_v into_o the_o low_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n 4._o eph._n and_o in_o that_o humane_a nature_n do_v make_v intercession_n for_o we_o at_o his_o father_n right_a hand_n
against_o such_o bitter_a enemy_n of_o christ_n shall_v not_o a_o zealous_a christian_a say_v as_o david_n say_v to_o michal_n when_o she_o scoff_v he_o for_o his_o devotion_n to_o his_o god_n 2_o sam._n 6.22_o i_o will_v be_v yet_o more_o vile_a than_o thus_o therefore_o let_v i_o desire_v you_o that_o you_o will_v abhor_v these_o tenant_n and_o opinion_n of_o they_o which_o do_v overthrow_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n if_o this_o that_o they_o hold_v be_v a_o truth_n which_o we_o deny_v there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o this_o book_n that_o we_o hold_v if_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n that_o they_o profess_v there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o jesus_n christ_n that_o profess_v himself_o the_o way_n the_o truth_n and_o the_o life_n and_o as_o the_o apostle_n preach_v 1_o cor._n 15._o the_o apostle_n shall_v be_v find_v false_a witness_n of_o god_n for_o they_o preach_v that_o christ_n though_o he_o suffer_v on_o the_o cross_n his_o body_n be_v raise_v and_o in_o it_o he_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n and_o mediate_n and_o intercede_v as_o a_o advocate_n for_o we_o if_o christ_n be_v not_o rise_v than_o we_o be_v false_a witness_n of_o god_n 1_o cor._n 15.15_o because_o we_o have_v testify_v that_o he_o raise_v up_o christ_n who_o he_o raise_v not_o up_o if_o the_o dead_a rise_v not_o and_o if_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v false_a witness_n and_o impostor_n who_o then_o be_v the_o man_n that_o we_o must_v look_v on_o as_o divine_a man_n as_o know_v understand_a man_n we_o must_v look_v on_o these_o as_o a_o generation_n of_o liar_n that_o have_v deceive_v we_o and_o make_v we_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v rise_v and_o that_o we_o shall_v rise_v by_o his_o power_n and_o there_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n who_o be_v to_o be_v eye_v as_o man_n of_o truth_n we_o must_v look_v on_o lucian_n that_o in_o his_o dialogue_n and_o other_o book_n jeer_v those_o that_o expect_v happiness_n after_o this_o life_n or_o fear_v misery_n and_o call_v our_o bless_a jesus_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o sophister_n that_o be_v hang_v upon_o a_o cross_n we_o must_v look_v on_o he_o as_o a_o orthodox_n man_n as_o a_o divine_a writer_n pliny_n that_o write_v of_o the_o soul_n immortality_n and_o deny_v that_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n we_o must_v look_v on_o he_o as_o canonical_a julian_n the_o apostate_n must_v be_v admire_v for_o his_o wisdom_n to_o throw_v away_o our_o bibles_n or_o burn_v they_o as_o those_o in_o the_o 19_o act_n 19_o do_v burn_v their_o book_n of_o curious_a art_n will_v be_v a_o point_n of_o wisdom_n and_o discretion_n it_o will_v be_v no_o impiety_n to_o deny_v the_o truth_n that_o peter_n paul_n and_o other_o servant_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n have_v preach_v and_o seal_v with_o their_o blood_n o_o brethren_n take_v heed_n of_o this_o hellish_a hellish_a doctrine_n take_v heed_n of_o these_o seducer_n beware_v of_o these_o wolf_n that_o come_v in_o sheep_n clothing_n see_v how_o this_o tenant_n plant_v its_o ordnance_n to_o batter_v down_o all_o goodness_n all_o the_o hope_n of_o christian_n and_o strength_n of_o christianity_n 3._o use_v the_o belief_n of_o this_o truth_n may_v bring_v in_o stream_n of_o joy_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o spirit_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o great_a trouble_n and_o misery_n that_o can_v come_v upon_o we_o therefore_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o have_v lay_v down_o this_o point_n 1_o thess_n 4.1_o see_v what_o use_n he_o make_v of_o it_o in_o the_o 18._o ver_fw-la for_o their_o consolation_n bid_v they_o to_o comfort_v one_o another_o with_o those_o word_n in_o your_o weakness_n and_o sickness_n consider_v that_o these_o body_n that_o be_v frail_a mortal_a and_o must_v after_o a_o while_o moulder_v into_o dust_n shall_v at_o the_o resurrection_n be_v make_v like_o unto_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o christ_n phil._n 3._o last_o be_v death_n approach_v do_v the_o king_n of_o fear_n job_n 18.14_o knock_v at_o the_o door_n of_o your_o cottage_n of_o clay_n let_v the_o fear_n of_o death_n be_v kill_v by_o the_o meditation_n of_o this_o that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n by_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n have_v abolish_v our_o death_n and_o bring_v life_n and_o immortality_n to_o light_v through_o his_o glorious_a gospel_n 2_o tim._n 1.10_o christ_n cujus_fw-la victoria_fw-la nostra_fw-la est_fw-la who_o victory_n be_v we_o have_v overcome_v sin_n the_o grave_n death_n hell_n and_o he_o arise_v as_o a_o public_a person_n his_o glorious_a resurrection_n may_v be_v a_o pledge_n unto_o we_o of_o our_o future_a resurrection_n in_o glory_n our_o body_n be_v call_v in_o scripture_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n let_v i_o tell_v you_o that_o god_n will_v not_o pull_v down_o his_o temple_n unless_o he_o intend_v to_o build_v they_o up_o again_o he_o will_v set_v up_o these_o temple_n in_o glory_n which_o he_o pull_v down_o and_o lay_v in_o the_o dust_n with_o dishonour_n i_o remember_v what_o a_o divine_a poet_n say_v speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n pellite_fw-la cord_n metum_fw-la mea_fw-la membra_fw-la &_o credit_n vosmet_fw-la cum_fw-la christo_fw-la reditura_fw-la deo_fw-la atra_fw-la sepulcra_fw-la respuite_fw-la prudentius_n my_o limb_n drive_v away_o from_o you_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n you_o shall_v with_o christ_n return_v to_o god_n sleight_v the_o blackness_n and_o horror_n of_o the_o grave_n which_o do_v sweet_o accord_v with_o the_o divine_a rapture_n of_o paul_n 1_o cor._n 15.55_o 56_o 57_o o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n but_o thanks_o be_v to_o god_n which_o give_v we_o victory_n through_o jesus_n christ_n our_o lord_n the_o full_a persuasion_n of_o this_o be_v that_o which_o have_v fill_v the_o spirit_n of_o christian_n with_o joy_n and_o fortitude_n in_o their_o suffering_n the_o heavenly_a company_n of_o martyr_n that_o sacrifice_v their_o life_n for_o christ_n do_v deserve_v rather_o to_o be_v register_v in_o the_o catalogue_n of_o fool_n then_o to_o be_v dignify_v or_o ennoble_v as_o saint_n with_o the_o crown_n of_o martyrdom_n have_v they_o suffer_v and_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o resurrection_n this_o have_v make_v their_o suffering_n comfortable_a to_o they_o and_o glorious_a to_o we_o as_o our_o pattern_n and_o example_n for_o imitation_n this_o have_v make_v they_o so_o willing_a to_o hazard_v their_o life_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v this_o that_o have_v make_v they_o so_o prodigal_a of_o their_o blood_n that_o i_o remember_v it_o be_v report_v of_o one_o of_o the_o heathen_a persecutor_n that_o he_o say_v he_o think_v the_o christian_n delight_v in_o torment_n they_o seem_v to_o sleight_v all_o punishment_n and_o torture_n that_o the_o witty_a malice_n of_o their_o adversary_n can_v invent_v or_o their_o cruelty_n inflict_v this_o carry_v they_o forth_o in_o that_o height_n of_o spirit_n that_o they_o rejoice_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o torture_n it_o be_v this_o that_o cheer_v the_o heart_n of_o a_o martyr_n that_o be_v trouble_v a_o little_a before_o his_o suffering_n the_o comforter_n come_v and_o assure_v he_o of_o happiness_n at_o the_o resurrection_n gregorius_n nazianzenus_n in_o his_o three_o oration_n tell_v we_o of_o theclas_n and_o some_o other_o martyr_n that_o be_v observe_v by_o the_o spectator_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o be_v very_o merry_a in_o the_o extremity_n of_o torment_n marcus_z of_o arethusa_n when_o the_o bloody_a persecutor_n have_v exercise_v his_o faith_n and_o patience_n with_o several_a sort_n of_o torture_n and_o do_v afterward_o draw_v he_o through_o draught_n and_o other_o noisome_a place_n he_o account_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d rather_o his_o pomp_n and_o glory_n than_o his_o misery_n and_o calamity_n woman_n have_v discover_v masculine_a and_o heroical_a spirit_n when_o they_o be_v call_v to_o suffer_v for_o the_o lord_n nostri_fw-la pveri_fw-la &_o mulierculae_fw-la tortores_fw-la suos_fw-la taciti_fw-la vincunt_fw-la &_o exprimere_fw-la illis_fw-la gemitum_fw-la nec_fw-la ignis_fw-la potest_fw-la lactantius_n say_v that_o the_o christian_a child_n and_o woman_n do_v by_o their_o silence_n over_o come_v their_o tormentor_n and_o the_o flame_n of_o ●rt_n can_v not_o make_v they_o weep_v austin_n tell_v of_o a_o poor_a weak_a maid_n that_o go_v to_o suffer_v for_o christ_n tanquam_fw-la ad_fw-la epulas_fw-la invitata_fw-la a●_n though_o she_o have_v be_v invite_v to_o a_o banquet_n we_o read_v of_o some_o when_o they_o come_v to_o lay_v down_o their_o life_n they_o be_v sorry_a that_o they_o have_v no_o more_o life_n to_o lose_v for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n tertullian_n say_v that_o the_o christian_n be_v so_o ready_a to_o suffer_v
that_o they_o be_v as_o willing_a to_o be_v devour_v by_o the_o lion_n as_o the_o people_n be_v desirous_a of_o their_o destruction_n by_o the_o lion_n eusebius_n tell_v we_o that_o when_o as_o the_o proconsul_n exhort_v germanicus_n to_o relent_v admonish_v he_o of_o his_o tender_a year_n pray_v he_o to_o pity_v his_o own_o case_n be_v now_o in_o the_o flower_n of_o his_o youth_n he_o without_o intermission_n entice_v the_o beast_n to_o devour_v he_o eusebius_n four_o book_n of_o the_o eccl._n hist_n what_o steel_v the_o spirit_n of_o these_o man_n and_o carry_v they_o above_o carnal_a reason_n and_o the_o weak_a principle_n of_o nature_n but_o a_o strong_a and_o powerful_a persuasion_n in_o their_o spirit_n that_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o glorious_a and_o joyful_a resurrection_n at_o the_o appear_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n this_o be_v that_o that_o the_o apostle_n prove_v to_o we_o heb._n 11.35_o some_o be_v torture_v not_o accept_v deliverance_n that_o they_o may_v obtain_v a_o better_a resurrection_n he_o inform_v we_o that_o when_o deliverance_n be_v offer_v they_o will_v not_o accept_v of_o it_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n they_o expect_v a_o resurrection_n threaten_n can_v not_o terrify_v they_o from_o the_o truth_n nor_o promise_n draw_v they_o to_o error_n because_o they_o be_v without_o waver_v persuade_v of_o a_o resurrection_n this_o be_v that_o that_o make_v polycarpus_n the_o martyr_n so_o willing_a todie_n for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o appear_v by_o his_o speech_n when_o he_o be_v tie_v at_o the_o stake_n i_o thank_v thou_o that_o thou_o have_v gracious_o vouchsafe_v this_o day_n to_o allot_v i_o a_o portion_n among_o the_o number_n of_o martyr_n among_o the_o people_n of_o christ_n unto_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o everlasting_a life_n both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n etc._n etc._n euseb_n this_o be_v that_o likewise_o that_o make_v the_o saint_n to_o be_v so_o merry_a and_o cheerful_a upon_o their_o deathbed_n when_o hilarion_n lie_v sick_a and_o in_o his_o flesh_n do_v feel_v a_o little_a fear_n of_o death_n he_o present_o reprove_v himself_o and_o break_v forth_o into_o these_o word_n egredere_fw-la egredere_fw-la anima_fw-la go_v forth_o go_v forth_o my_o soul_n have_v thou_o serve_v christ_n so_o many_o year_n and_o now_o be_v thou_o afraid_a to_o die_v what_o difference_n can_v there_o be_v between_o the_o death_n of_o saint_n and_o of_o wicked_a profane_a unbelieving_a man_n if_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a at_o all_o and_o therefore_o as_o you_o desire_v to_o live_v comfortable_o and_o to_o die_v happy_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o christ_n rejoice_v upon_o your_o deathbed_n live_v constant_o in_o the_o assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o while_o other_o that_o have_v seduce_v ignorant_a and_o poor_a people_n into_o familisme_n with_o a_o brazen_a face_n all_o their_o day_n shall_v tremble_v upon_o their_o deathbed_n be_v afraid_a of_o death_n and_o dread_v a_o judgement_n day_n which_o they_o have_v deny_v like_o the_o emperor_n hadrian_n animula_fw-la vagula_fw-la blandula_fw-la quae_fw-la nunc_fw-la abibis_fw-la in_o loca_fw-la pallidula_fw-la rigida_fw-la nudula_fw-la poor_a wander_a pale_a quiver_a soul_n whither_o shall_v thou_o go_v platina_n in_o the_o life_n of_o the_o pope_n you_o shall_v call_v for_o death_n and_o not_o look_v on_o death_n as_o a_o way_n to_o the_o infernal_a prison_n but_o as_o a_o passage_n to_o immortality_n in_o heaven_n you_o shall_v see_v the_o lion_n death_n slay_v and_o find_v nothing_o but_o honey_n in_o the_o carcase_n you_o shall_v rejoice_v in_o confidence_n that_o your_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v while_o they_o shall_v tremble_v for_o fear_n of_o a_o resurrection_n for_o i_o will_v have_v you_o to_o take_v notice_n that_o god_n seldom_o suffer_v man_n that_o be_v grow_v to_o this_o height_n of_o unbelief_n and_o ungodliness_n to_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n to_o die_v without_o gall_a and_o trouble_a conscience_n as_o it_o be_v observe_v by_o some_o of_o many_o that_o be_v profess_a atheist_n who_o when_o they_o come_v to_o their_o death_n bed_n though_o they_o in_o their_o health_n and_o strength_n swim_v in_o a_o world_n of_o pleasure_n and_o contentment_n assert_v that_o there_o be_v no_o god_n yet_o when_o they_o come_v to_o lie_v on_o their_o deathbed_n none_o seem_v to_o be_v more_o afraid_a of_o a_o god_n and_o to_o tremble_v so_o much_o at_o his_o power_n as_o these_o man_n so_o none_o be_v more_o afraid_a of_o death_n hell_n and_o a_o resurrection_n than_o some_o of_o these_o that_o have_v deny_v that_o there_o be_v any_o hell_n or_o a_o resurrection_n i_o remember_v the_o speech_n of_o zeno_n the_o philosopher_n if_o i_o will_v persuade_v any_o man_n from_o atheism_n say_v he_o i_o will_v lead_v he_o to_o the_o deathbed_n of_o a_o atheist_n when_o he_o be_v gasp_v out_o his_o last_o breath_n so_o if_o i_o have_v not_o sufficient_o persuade_v you_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n by_o what_o i_o have_v bring_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o truth_n if_o i_o know_v where_o any_o of_o these_o do_v lie_v sick_a i_o will_v carry_v you_o to_o their_o deathbed_n and_o you_o may_v see_v some_o of_o they_o trouble_v and_o gall_v in_o their_o conscience_n that_o have_v blasphemous_o profess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o christ_n come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n hereafter_o i_o shall_v not_o need_v at_o the_o present_a to_o add_v many_o more_o word_n for_o i_o hope_v better_a thing_n of_o you_o and_o such_o thing_n which_o accompany_v salvation_n i_o hope_v there_o be_v few_o such_o spirit_n as_o these_o in_o this_o congregation_n yet_o i_o know_v the_o devil_n be_v so_o subtle_a that_o where_o he_o think_v people_n be_v most_o spiritual_a and_o know_v god_n most_o and_o be_v acquaint_v with_o christ_n he_o send_v his_o imp_n his_o sadducee_n to_o trouble_n and_o assault_v they_o he_o do_v not_o set_v so_o much_o upon_o any_o people_n to_o draw_v they_o away_o as_o upon_o those_o that_o make_v profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o devil_n know_v such_o who_o he_o have_v safe_a within_o his_o own_o command_n and_o many_o of_o these_o be_v not_o assault_v by_o these_o imp_n but_o when_o man_n seem_v to_o be_v heir_n and_o boast_v of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v in_o the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n and_o adoption_n and_o to_o have_v their_o name_n write_v in_o heaven_n and_o that_o none_o be_v able_a to_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n the_o devil_n send_v his_o evil_a angel_n to_o such_o man_n as_o these_o therefore_o know_v that_o you_o shall_v meet_v with_o such_o spirit_n i_o think_v good_a to_o speak_v somewhat_o before_o that_o be_v forewarn_v you_o may_v be_v fore-armed_n praemoniti_fw-la praemuniti_fw-la that_o you_o may_v go_v on_o in_o the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o might_n though_o the_o devil_n may_v buffet_v you_o for_o a_o time_n by_o these_o wicked_a instrument_n and_o cast_v his_o fiery_a dart_n into_o your_o heart_n and_o spirit_n to_o persuade_v you_o that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n and_o may_v certain_o know_v that_o if_o there_o be_v any_o truth_n in_o the_o history_n of_o the_o gospel_n this_o be_v a_o truth_n concern_v the_o resurrection_n and_o it_o be_v the_o desire_n of_o my_o soul_n that_o you_o may_v live_v continual_o and_o constant_o in_o the_o confidence_n and_o assurance_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o your_o body_n which_o be_v join_v with_o a_o lively_a faith_n in_o christ_n death_n and_o resurrection_n will_v sweeten_v your_o life_n and_o crown_v your_o death_n with_o happiness_n death_n which_o come_v in_o upon_o man_n as_o a_o legal_a curse_n shall_v be_v turn_v into_o a_o blessing_n unto_o you_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v your_o fear_n but_o desire_v with_o paul_n you_o shall_v desire_v to_o be_v dissolve_v and_o to_o be_v with_o christ_n but_o this_o doctrine_n be_v lay_v aside_o as_o of_o no_o worth_n or_o value_n christ_n will_v appear_v unto_o you_o but_o a_o shadow_n fancy_n and_o forge_a chimaera_n of_o man_n brain_n as_o the_o wicked_a pope_n be_v persuade_v who_o do_v thus_o glory_n in_o his_o riches_n what_o great_a riches_n have_v we_o get_v by_o this_o fable_n of_o christ_n wherefore_o as_o you_o desire_v to_o breath_n forth_o your_o soul_n with_o joy_n into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n live_v in_o the_o comfort_n of_o the_o resurrection_n through_o christ_n that_o will_v make_v you_o say_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o pang_n of_o death_n with_o simeon_n lord_n let_v thy_o servant_n now_o depart_v for_o my_o eye_n
have_v see_v thy_o salvation_n or_o else_o such_o music_n will_v be_v in_o your_o heart_n as_o be_v in_o stephens_n when_o he_o pray_v lord_n jesus_n receive_v my_o spirit_n you_o shall_v have_v peace_n at_o the_o last_o which_o shall_v be_v everlasting_a the_o life_n of_o grace_n shall_v be_v lengthen_v out_o with_o a_o eternity_n of_o glory_n which_o god_n and_o the_o father_n grant_v unto_o you_o in_o the_o riches_n of_o his_o grace_n through_o his_o son_n our_o bless_a jesus_n and_o redeemer_n amen_n christ_n title_n to_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o saint_n maintain_v sermon_n ii_o christ_n be_v a_o christian_n shield_n and_o buckler_n so_o that_o none_o can_v strike_v at_o a_o christian_n but_o through_o the_o side_n and_o loin_n of_o his_o saviour_n we_o can_v wrong_v saint_n unless_o we_o injure_v the_o king_n of_o saint_n christ_n and_o his_o people_n have_v the_o same_o enemy_n this_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o opposer_n of_o the_o resurrection_n who_o as_o they_o be_v enemy_n to_o christian_n so_o they_o be_v to_o christ_n and_o they_o do_v not_o so_o much_o wrong_n to_o his_o people_n as_o they_o offer_v violence_n unto_o he_o as_o they_o will_v bereave_v his_o member_n of_o the_o happiness_n of_o their_o resurrection_n so_o they_o will_v rob_v he_o of_o his_o limb_n member_n and_o glory_n and_o therefore_o as_o i_o have_v plead_v against_o the_o live_a adversary_n of_o dead_a saint_n so_o i_o shall_v now_o plead_v the_o cause_n of_o christ_n against_o those_o enemy_n of_o christ_n who_o in_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n deny_v the_o raise_n of_o his_o mystical_a body_n which_o do_v fight_v against_o that_o truth_n which_o do_v next_o present_v itself_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o text_n in_o these_o word_n my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o arise_v i_o must_v speak_v something_o for_o the_o exposition_n something_o by_o way_n of_o amplification_n of_o that_o which_o i_o apprehend_v to_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n main_o point_v at_o in_o the_o word_n together_o with_o my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v so_o it_o be_v in_o our_o translation_n and_o those_o that_o carry_v it_o thus_o they_o make_v this_o to_o be_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o word_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v raise_v together_o with_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o if_o the_o holy_a ghost_n do_v point_n at_o this_o than_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o shall_v be_v observe_v will_v be_v this_o that_o christ_n jesus_n have_v a_o body_n a_o natural_a body_n if_o it_o do_v not_o clear_o appear_v from_o this_o place_n yet_o it_o do_v from_o other_o for_o it_o be_v say_v he_o be_v make_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o flesh_n and_o likewise_o joh._n 1._o the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n and_o great_a be_v the_o mystery_n of_o godliness_n god_n manifest_v in_o the_o flesh_n 1_o tim._n 3.16_o which_o will_v overthrow_v that_o which_o some_o familisticall_a spirit_n dare_v to_o assert_v in_o our_o time_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n never_o have_v any_o natural_a body_n allegorise_v the_o whole_a history_n of_o the_o incarnation_n life_n and_o death_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o second_o if_o it_o be_v thus_o expound_v as_o some_o learned_a man_n do_v expound_v the_o word_n the_o next_o observation_n will_v be_v this_o that_o this_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v a_o dead_a body_n revel_v 1.18_o i_o be_o he_o that_o live_v and_o be_v dead_a the_o true_a christ_n in_o his_o body_n be_v once_o dead_a his_o body_n be_v a_o crucify_a body_n he_o his_o own_o self_n say_v peter_n in_o his_o own_o body_n bear_v our_o sin_n upon_o the_o cross_n 1_o pet._n 2.24_o he_o be_v wound_v for_o our_o iniquity_n his_o body_n be_v bruise_v for_o our_o transgression_n isa_n 53._o three_o that_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n be_v raise_v with_o my_o dead_a body_n they_o shall_v rise_v it_o be_v suppose_v that_o this_o dead_a body_n speak_v of_o shall_v arise_v and_o this_o be_v that_o that_o be_v so_o frequent_o preach_v by_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v witness_n appoint_v by_o god_n to_o testify_v that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n do_v rise_v from_o the_o dead_a the_o devil_n know_v what_o a_o truth_n this_o be_v how_o much_o life_n glory_n sweetness_n and_o power_n there_o be_v in_o it_o therefore_o he_o employ_v his_o instrument_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n to_o do_v what_o they_o can_v to_o smother_v this_o truth_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n what_o lie_v do_v they_o not_o make_v what_o stone_n do_v they_o not_o turn_v what_o pain_n do_v they_o not_o take_v that_o they_o may_v possess_v the_o people_n with_o this_o persuasion_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n do_v never_o rise_v out_o of_o the_o grave_n but_o that_o his_o disciple_n come_v and_o steal_v he_o away_o but_o brethren_n christ_n be_v rise_v and_o those_o that_o right_o understand_v this_o do_v find_v what_o sweetness_n and_o consolation_n come_v to_o their_o heart_n by_o believe_v this_o point_n there_o be_v so_o much_o in_o it_o that_o paul_n profess_v he_o desire_v to_o know_v nothing_o but_o christ_n and_o he_o crucify_v phil._n 3.10_o the_o power_n of_o his_o resurrection_n and_o the_o fellowship_n of_o his_o suffering_n and_o peter_n 1._o pet._n 1.3_o say_v that_o god_n have_v beget_v we_o again_o to_o a_o lively_a hope_n through_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o hope_n of_o the_o disciple_n be_v almost_o dead_a and_o extinguish_v when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n lie_v in_o the_o grave_n but_o now_o christ_n be_v rise_v and_o have_v discover_v his_o power_n in_o vanquish_a his_n and_o all_o our_o enemy_n now_o we_o have_v a_o lively_a hope_n in_o we_o that_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o christ_n for_o in_o the_o believe_v of_o his_o resurrection_n we_o have_v a_o sweet_a and_o comfortable_a assurance_n of_o our_o own_o resurrection_n from_o the_o dead_a four_o with_o my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v christ_n as_o i_o hint_v before_o do_v all_o thing_n and_o suffer_v all_o thing_n as_o a_o public_a person●_n he_o die_v not_o for_o his_o own_o but_o for_o our_o sin_n q●i_fw-la non_fw-la habuit_fw-la propria_fw-la portavit_fw-la aliena_fw-la ful●_n he_o that_o have_v no_o sin_n of_o his_o own_o do_v beare●_n the_o sin_n of_o other_o man_n he_o rise_v not_o so_o much_o for_o his_o own_o as_o for_o our_o justification_n he_o die_v for_o our_o sin_n rom._n 4._o the_o last_o and_o he_o rise_v for_o our_o justification_n so_o that_o when_o christ_n do_v rise_v we_o rise_v and_o he_o that_o believe_v this_o in_o the_o spirit_n see_v that_o he_o himself_o be_v rise_v with_o the_o lord_n there_o be_v be_v a_o twofold_a resurrection_n a_o resurrection_n by_o faith_n when_o we_o do_v believe_v that_o we_o be_v rise_v in_o christ_n our_o king_n head_n and_o leader_n and_o there_o be_v a_o resurrection_n in_o our_o own_o person_n when_o we_o shall_v be_v raise_v in_o our_o own_o body_n christ_n do_v rise_v for_o the_o good_a and_o in_o the_o behalf_n of_o all_o his_o people_n and_o christ_n keep_v possession_n of_o heaven_n after_o his_o resurrection_n for_o we_o in_o who_o person_n we_o be_v already_o rise_v and_o in_o this_o respect_n it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o together_o with_o his_o dead_a body_n we_o shall_v arise_v five_o with_o my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v some_o interpret_v it_o thus_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n they_o shall_v rise_v that_o be_v there_o shall_v come_v at_o the_o last_o day_n a_o power_n from_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o raise_v up_o the_o saint_n to_o enjoy_v glory_n with_o the_o father_n but_o because_o i_o do_v not_o find_v these_o two_o word_n in_o the_o hebrew_n together_o nor_o with_o therefore_o be_v please_v to_o let_v i_o pass_v by_o these_o observation_n and_o to_o give_v you_o what_o i_o do_v apprehend_v to_o be_v the_o plain_a meaning_n of_o the_o text_n and_o to_o read_v the_o word_n thus_o my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v they_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n deliver_v by_o he_o for_o the_o comfort_n of_o his_o people_n assure_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v raise_v as_o his_o body_n and_o though_o some_o do_v understand_v they_o concern_v the_o restauration_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o bring_n in_o of_o they_o unto_o christ_n yet_o i_o apprehend_v that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a spiritual_a meaning_n of_o god_n in_o the_o word_n which_o i_o have_v open_v to_o you_o this_o day_n the_o point_n than_o will_v be_v this_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o saint_n which_o shall_v be_v raise_v be_v the_o dead_a body_n of_o christ_n himself_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d
cadaver_n meum_fw-la resurgent_fw-la they_o shall_v arise_v as_o my_o carcase_n or_o dead_a body_n which_o i_o shall_v enlarge_v by_o some_o consideration_n first_o consideration_n christ_n and_o his_o member_n be_v one_o therefore_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v raise_v as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n be_v the_o member_n of_o the_o head_n christ_n jesus_n he_o be_v the_o head_n of_o the_o body_n therefore_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v raise_v they_o be_v raise_v as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n ephes_n 5.30_o we_o be_v member_n of_o his_o body_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o of_o his_o bone_n the_o body_n of_o a_o saint_n be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o flesh_n of_o a_o saint_n be_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o saint_n be_v one_o with_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n paul_n persecute_v the_o saint_n and_o cast_v their_o body_n into_o prison_n christ_n call_v to_o he_o from_o heaven_n why_o persecute_v thou_o i_o when_o the_o body_n of_o a_o saint_n be_v imprison_v christ_n be_v then_o shut_v up_o in_o prison_n so_o when_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v raise_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v raise_v as_o the_o animal_n spirit_n lie_v in_o the_o head_n by_o which_o motion_n be_v convey_v to_o the_o member_n so_o the_o spirit_n of_o power_n lie_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n by_o which_o we_o be_v move_v by_o which_o we_o be_v raise_v in_o which_o spirit_n we_o both_o in_o body_n and_o spirit_n be_v make_v one_o with_o the_o lord_n christ_n this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n be_v likewise_o set_v forth_o by_o paul_n 1._o cor._n 6.15_o know_v you_o not_o say_v the_o apostle_n that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n shall_v i_o then_o take_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o make_v they_o the_o member_n of_o a_o harlot_n as_o the_o hand_n or_o foot_n of_o a_o man_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o man_n so_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o as_o the_o head_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o the_o body_n make_v one_o natural_a body_n in_o that_o one_o spirit_n that_o be_v in_o they_o all_o and_o act_n in_o they_o all_o so_o christ_n and_o all_o believer_n make_v one_o in_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n by_o that_o one_o spirit_n which_o dwell_v in_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n and_o in_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n of_o every_o true_a believer_n 1._o cor._n 12.12_o as_o the_o body_n be_v one_o and_o have_v many_o member_n and_o all_o the_o member_n of_o that_o one_o body_n be_v many_o be_v one_o body_n so_o also_o be_v christ_n here_o you_o see_v that_o the_o apostle_n call_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n christ_n mystical_a so_o also_o be_v christ_n say_v he_o he_o give_v the_o church_n the_o name_n of_o christ_n by_o reason_n of_o this_o near_a union_n which_o be_v between_o christ_n jesus_n and_o all_o his_o member_n again_o the_o saint_n they_o be_v marry_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n &_o as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o wise_a may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o husband_n so_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n as_o well_o as_o their_o soul_n belong_v to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o be_v one_o with_o he_o and_o as_o adam_n when_o eve_n be_v bring_v to_o he_o say_v this_o be_v bone_n of_o my_o bone_n and_o flesh_n of_o my_o flesh_n so_o christ_n when_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v raise_v raise_v his_o own_o body_n and_o will_v say_v this_o be_v bone_n of_o my_o bone_n and_o flesh_n of_o my_o flesh_n then_o shall_v be_v the_o great_a marriage_n of_o the_o lamb_n than_o it_o shall_v be_v solemnize_v in_o a_o most_o glorious_a manner_n and_o than_o christ_n shall_v own_v all_o those_o who_o be_v give_v to_o he_o by_o the_o father_n and_o there_o in_o a_o solemn_a manner_n shall_v he_o marry_v they_o to_o himself_o he_o shall_v own_v they_o all_o for_o his_o own_o wife_n and_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v look_v on_o as_o one_o in_o he_o likewise_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o be_v raise_v be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o the_o sprig_n of_o a_o tree_n or_o the_o branch_n of_o a_o vine_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v part_n of_o the_o tree_n or_o part_n of_o the_o vine_n our_o saviour_n set_v forth_o this_o simile_n to_o we_o joh._n 15._o where_o he_o compare_v himself_o to_o a_o vine_n and_o all_o believer_n to_o branch_n in_o this_o vine_n christ_n shall_v be_v as_o the_o great_a vine_n in_o the_o resurrection_n and_o all_o believer_n shall_v be_v branch_n and_o sprig_n sprout_v out_o of_o this_o vine_n from_o that_o life_n power_n and_o spirit_n that_o god_n shall_v put_v forth_o through_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n this_o union_n be_v not_o by_o the_o confusion_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v unite_v as_o the_o ignorant_a familist_n do_v fond_o conceive_v but_o by_o the_o union_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v different_a in_o their_o personal_a being_n and_o individual_a nature_n which_o will_v appear_v by_o the_o similitude_n which_o god_n do_v make_v use_n of_o for_o the_o illustrate_v of_o this_o truth_n unto_o we_o as_o of_o body_n and_o member_n though_o all_o the_o member_n do_v make_v but_o one_o body_n yet_o every_o member_n do_v retain_v its_o proper_a place_n office_n and_o be_v in_o the_o body_n so_o that_o the_o hand_n be_v not_o the_o foot_n nor_o the_o foot_n the_o arm_n or_o head_n so_o it_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o his_o people_n christ_n still_o remain_v in_o his_o own_o person_n as_o head_n and_o they_o as_o several_a member_n belong_v to_o that_o head_n the_o spirit_n and_o body_n make_v one_o man_n yet_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o the_o body_n nor_o the_o body_n the_o spirit_n the_o vine_n and_o branch_n be_v one_o yet_o the_o vine_n be_v not_o the_o branch_n nor_o the_o branch_n the_o vine_n the_o husband_n and_o wife_n be_v one_o yet_o the_o husband_n be_v not_o the_o wife_n nor_o the_o wife_n the_o husband_n the_o second_o consideration_n for_o the_o amplify_a of_o this_o point_n may_v be_v this_o because_o that_o whatsoever_o he_o do_v or_o suffer_v be_v that_o he_o may_v bring_v all_o believer_n to_o a_o oneness_n with_o himself_o and_o the_o father_n and_o this_o be_v that_o he_o pray_v for_o joh._n 17._o the_o glory_n that_o thou_o give_v i_o i_o have_v give_v they_o that_o they_o may_v be_v one_o as_o we_o be_v one_o christ_n do_v therefore_o bear_v our_o sin_n christ_n do_v therefore_o put_v himself_o under_o all_o the_o curse_n due_a to_o we_o for_o our_o enormity_n he_o do_v therefore_o manifest_v himself_o as_o a_o conqueror_n over_o all_o the_o enemy_n that_o oppose_v we_o that_o all_o thing_n that_o may_v be_v any_o hindrance_n to_o our_o union_n or_o hinder_v our_o spiritual_a communion_n with_o god_n be_v remove_v in_o he_o eph._n 12.14_o we_o may_v be_v bring_v to_o a_o oneness_n and_o see_v ourselves_o as_o one_o body_n and_o one_o spirit_n with_o he_o our_o happiness_n lie_v in_o our_o oneness_n with_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n which_o be_v but_o one_o man_n make_v himself_o miserable_a by_o disunit_a himself_n from_o god_n who_o be_v but_o one_o mar._n 12.29_o and_o christ_n do_v make_v he_o happy_a by_o bring_v he_o back_o again_o to_o that_o oneness_n which_o he_o have_v with_o god_n it_o be_v the_o office_n and_o employment_n of_o christ_n to_o bring_v all_o thing_n from_o disunion_n to_o union_n and_o oneness_n with_o himself_o and_o the_o father_n which_o he_o have_v effect_v for_o we_o and_o therefore_o they_o shall_v be_v raise_v as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v the_o three_o consideration_n be_v this_o they_o shall_v rise_v as_o his_o dead_a body_n because_o they_o shall_v rise_v as_o the_o proper_a good_n possession_n and_o inheritance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n ask_v of_o i_o and_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o heathen_a for_o thy_o inheritance_n and_o the_o utmost_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n for_o thy_o possession_n they_o shall_v be_v raise_v as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o christ_n shall_v have_v a_o right_n propriety_n and_o interest_n in_o they_o you_o be_v not_o your_o own_o you_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n your_o body_n as_o well_o as_o your_o spirit_n be_v god_n etc._n etc._n 1_o cor._n 6.20_o the_o apostle_n give_v this_o reason_n why_o christ_n die_v and_o revive_v and_o rise_v again_o that_o he_o may_v be_v lord_n of_o the_o quick_a and_o dead_a rom._n 14.9_o that_o as_o a_o servant_n be_v more_o his_o
master_n then_o his_o own_o so_o christ_n be_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o resurrection_n we_o shall_v be_v more_o his_o then_o our_o own_o we_o shall_v be_v raise_v as_o those_o in_o who_o christ_n have_v a_o propriety_n and_o interest_n we_o shall_v be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o shall_v be_v king_n and_o lord_n over_o we_o all_o and_o rule_v over_o we_o his_o sceptre_n of_o glory_n shall_v be_v set_v up_o in_o every_o heart_n and_o his_o throne_n shall_v be_v exalt_v in_o every_o spirit_n thus_o my_o dead_a body_n they_o shall_v rise_v they_o shall_v rise_v as_o i_o they_o be_v my_o dead_a man_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v my_o live_a man_n here_o you_o see_v that_o christ_n will_v own_v they_o for_o his_o when_o they_o be_v in_o the_o dust_n there_o be_v some_o that_o shall_v speak_v to_o christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n as_o though_o they_o be_v familiar_o acquaint_v with_o he_o who_o he_o will_v not_o own_o save_v depart_v from_o i_o i_o know_v you_o not_o you_o worker_n of_o iniquity_n but_o christ_n will_v own_v his_o saint_n mal._n 3.17_o they_o shall_v be_v i_o say_v the_o lord_n of_o host_n when_o i_o make_v up_o my_o jewel_n or_o special_a treasure_n and_o i_o will_v spare_v they_o as_o a_o man_n spare_v his_o own_o son_n that_o serve_v he_o as_o man_n will_v not_o part_v with_o their_o jewel_n so_o christ_n will_v not_o lose_v the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n they_o be_v part_n of_o his_o special_a treasure_n the_o four_o consideration_n be_v this_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n that_o shall_v be_v raise_v may_v be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n for_o this_o reason_n because_o christ_n in_o the_o spirit_n shall_v be_v the_o life_n soul_n and_o form_n that_o shall_v give_v life_n and_o be_v to_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n at_o the_o resurrection_n as_o the_o body_n be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o dwell_v in_o it_o so_o christ_n jesus_n dwell_v in_o the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n by_o his_o spirit_n their_o body_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v his_o body_n and_o as_o a_o man_n may_v say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n it_o belong_v to_o that_o humane_a spirit_n in_o i_o because_o his_o humane_a spirit_n move_v live_v in_o it_o and_o do_v as_o a_o divine_a power_n act_n in_o it_o so_o our_o body_n be_v raise_v may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n because_o he_o shall_v act_v as_o the_o spirit_n form_n and_o soul_n in_o they_o christ_n shall_v be_v the_o soul_n which_o shall_v give_v life_n and_o be_v to_o all_o saint_n which_o shall_v be_v raise_v by_o he_o the_o five_o consideration_n death_n can_v dissolve_v the_o union_n which_o be_v between_o christ_n and_o a_o believer_n the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n be_v the_o urnein●_n which_o the_o ash_n of_o dead_a saint_n be_v preserve_v rom._n 8.38_o 39_o i_o be_o persuade_v say_v paul_n that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n nor_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v nor_o height_n nor_o depth_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n man_n do_v consist_v of_o a_o natural_a body_n and_o humane_a spirit_n and_o death_n can_v make_v a_o separation_n between_o god_n love_n and_o our_o body_n no_o more_o than_o it_o can_v make_v a_o separation_n between_o his_o love_n and_o our_o soul_n among_o the_o thing_n which_o god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o we_o in_o christ_n the_o apostle_n do_v reckon_v up_o death_n 1_o cor._n 3.22_o which_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o curse_n but_o a_o blessing_n to_o saint_n it_o will_v be_v a_o curse_n unto_o we_o do_v it_o bring_v a_o irrecoverable_a ruin_n and_o destruction_n to_o our_o body_n rev._n 14.13_o bless_a be_v the_o dead_a which_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n death_n disability_n to_o cast_v our_o body_n out_o of_o god_n love_n and_o protection_n be_v that_o which_o do_v convert_v death_n through_o christ_n into_o a_o blessing_n unto_o we_o paul_n call_v saint_n in_o respect_n of_o their_o bodily_a death_n 1_o thess_n 4.14_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d those_o that_o sleep_n in_o christ_n as_o leep_v do_v not_o bereave_v man_n of_o life_n so_o death_n do_v not_o take_v away_o from_o saint_n their_o life_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n as_o a_o philosopher_n tell_v a_o tyrant_n he_o may_v kill_v he_o but_o not_o hurt_v he_o so_o death_n may_v kill_v but_o can_v hurt_v a_o saint_n because_o the_o union_n between_o god_n and_o he_o be_v in_o dissolvible_a rom._n 14.8_o whether_o we_o live_v or_o di●_n we_o be_v the_o lord_n and_o therefore_o it_o may_v be_v true_o say_v my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o arise_v sixth_o consideration_n the_o body_n of_o saint_n be_v sanctify_v by_o christ_n and_o therefore_o he_o can_v but_o own_v they_o sanctification_n be_v the_o mark_n or_o seal_v of_o christ_n as_o merchant_n do●_n set_v their_o seal_n and_o mark_n upon_o their_o good_a which_o they_o will_v own_v so_o christ_n will_v for_o ever_o own_o that_o upon_o which_o he_o have_v set_v the_o sea●_n and_o mark_n of_o his_o sanctify_a spirit_n the_o spirit_n of_o a_o saint_n and_o christ_n will_v never_o cease_v t●_n own_o his_o own_o house_n and_o the_o place_n which_o 〈◊〉_d have_v choose_v for_o his_o habitation_n god_n do_v n●●_n only_o honour_v our_o body_n by_o call_v they_o h●●_n 19_o know_v you_o not_o that_o your_o body_n be_v the_o temple_n 〈◊〉_d the_o holy_a spirit_n it_o be_v not_o a_o paradox_n then_o in_o divinity_n that_o christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v own_v they_o as_o his_o own_o seven_o consideration_n christ_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d incomplete_a a_o man_n that_o want_v a_o member_n be_v incomplete_a and_o imperfect_a so_o christ_n shall_v be_v imperfect_a and_o incomplete_a be_v he_o defective_a in_o any_o of_o his_o member_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o therefore_o all_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n must_v be_v raise_v as_o his_o body_n it_o be_v a_o argument_n that_o some_o of_o the_o schoolman_n make_v use_v of_o to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o resurrection_n of_o body_n from_o the_o incompleatnesse_n of_o the_o soul_n when_o it_o be_v separate_v from_o its_o proper_a body_n which_o it_o do_v inform_v and_o with_o which_o in_o union_n it_o make_v one_o compositum_fw-la so_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n must_v be_v raise_v that_o christ_n may_v be_v complete_a in_o his_o mystical_a body_n as_o he_o be_v in_o his_o own_o person_n the_o church_n be_v call_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o fullness_n of_o christ_n eph._n 1._o last_o because_o as_o a_o body_n be_v not_o full_a and_o complete_a in_o his_o be_v that_o want_v a_o member_n so_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v complete_a if_o any_o part_n of_o he_o be_v want_v and_o therefore_o the_o body_n of_o all_o saint_n must_v be_v raise_v that_o christ_n may_v appear_v in_o his_o glory_n and_o completeness_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o thus_o have_v open_v this_o doctrine_n and_o illustrate_v it_o by_o these_o consideration_n i_o shall_v draw_v some_o useful_a conclusion_n from_o it_o use_v 1_o see_v christian_n shall_v be_v one_o body_n at_o the_o resurrection_n this_o shall_v teach_v we_o to_o be_v one_o here_o in_o the_o bond_n of_o love_n that_o one_o member_n shall_v oppose_v and_o fight_v against_o another_o member_n be_v against_o nature_n and_o that_o one_o christian_n shall_v fight_v against_o another_o or_o take_v his_o fellow-member_n by_o the_o throat_n be_v against_o the_o principle_n of_o grace_n in_o the_o 13._o of_o gen._n and_o the_o 8._o ver_fw-la abram_n do_v thus_o speak_v unto_o his_o brother_n lot_n let_v there_o be_v no_o strife_n i_o pray_v thou_o between_o i_o and_o thou_o for_o we_o be_v brethren_n christian_n shall_v not_o strive_v or_o contend_v one_o against_o another_o because_o they_o be_v fellow-member_n it_o be_v report_v of_o john_n that_o in_o his_o old_a age_n be_v unable_a by_o weakness_n to_o speak_v long_o unto_o the_o congregation_n he_o will_v stand_v up_o and_o in_o stead_n of_o a_o long_a sermon_n ingeminate_v this_o precept_n diligite_fw-la filioli_fw-la diligite_fw-la little_o child_n love_n love_v one_o another_o there_o can_v be_v no_o strong_a argument_n to_o love_v then_o the_o consideration_n of_o our_o union_n col._n 3.15_o let_v the_o peace_n of_o god_n rule_n in_o your_o heart_n to_o the_o which_o also_o you_o be_v call_v in_o one_o body_n war_n among_o member_n be_v unnatural_a that_o love_n and_o peace_n may_v reign_v and_o rule_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o christian_n god_n do_v make_v they_o all_o one_o body_n so_o the_o apostle_n in_o
the_o three_o of_o the_o eph._n 6._o do_v teach_v we_o that_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d part_n of_o the_o same_o body_n one_o that_o desire_v to_o moderate_v between_o the_o calvinist_n and_o lutheran_n wish_v they_o not_o to_o be_v so_o bitter_a the_o one_o against_o the_o other_o make_v use_v of_o this_o argument_n tell_v they_o that_o luther_n and_o calvin_n be_v reconcile_v in_o love_n together_o in_o heaven_n let_v not_o strife_n hatred_n malice_n and_o bitterness_n prevail_v among_o you_o christian_n for_o you_o shall_v sweet_o agree_v together_o as_o one_o body_n in_o one_o spirit_n at_o the_o resurrection_n use_v 2._o there_o be_v such_o a_o glorious_a union_n between_o we_o and_o christ_n it_o shall_v engage_v the_o spirit_n of_o saint_n to_o be_v much_o in_o the_o contemplation_n of_o it_o as_o the_o blood_n and_o spirit_n do_v run_v through_o the_o body_n so_o this_o doctrine_n of_o union_n do_v run_v through_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o christian_a religion_n our_o justification_n in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n &_o our_o own_o justification_n in_o our_o own_o person_n by_o christ_n can_v be_v clear_o understand_v if_o we_o be_v total_o ignorant_a of_o union_n with_o christ_n as_o the_o philosopher_n say_v that_o all_o moral_a virtue_n be_v link_v together_o in_o justice_n so_o all_o the_o point_n of_o christianity_n be_v concatenate_v and_o join_v together_o in_o this_o doctrine_n of_o union_n as_o the_o star_n do_v lead_v the_o wise_a man_n to_o christ_n shine_v over_o the_o place_n where_o christ_n be_v so_o this_o doctrine_n of_o our_o union_n with_o christ_n shine_v among_o other_o truth_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o scripture_n do_v hold_v forth_o unto_o we_o a_o light_n to_o direct_v we_o through_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n into_o a_o perfect_a and_o comfortable_a knowledge_n of_o all_o other_o truth_n as_o it_o do_v in_o a_o especial_a manner_n beam_n forth_o light_a unto_o we_o to_o confirm_v we_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n for_o you_o see_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n be_v to_o be_v raise_v because_o they_o be_v unite_v to_o christ_n and_o one_o with_o he_o therefore_o this_o may_v strengthen_v the_o faith_n of_o every_o one_o of_o we_o concern_v the_o certainty_n of_o the_o resurrection●_n what_o say_v the_o apostle_n no_o man_n yet_o ever_o hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n but_o nourish_v it_o and_o cherish_v it_o eph._n 5.29_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n can_v hate_v his_o own_o flesh_n nor_o forget_v his_o own_o body_n the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o in_o love_n will_v raise_v they_o even_o while_o they_o lie_v in_o the_o dust_n they_o be_v his_o body_n our_o propriety_n in_o a_o thing_n do_v draw_v out_o our_o affection_n to_o the_o thing_n our_o body_n belong_v to_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v in_o his_o heart_n and_o affection_n even_o while_o they_o moulder_v in_o the_o dust_n therefore_o let_v this_o truth_n pierce_v your_o understanding_n and_o sink_v deep_a into_o your_o memory_n and_o be_v full_o persuade_v that_o your_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v because_o they_o be_v not_o so_o much_o your_o body_n as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o scripture_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v speak_v so_o glorious_o of_o that_o union_n which_o all_o the_o saint_n have_v with_o jesus_n christ_n in_o that_o one_o spirit_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n and_o in_o every_o saint_n that_o it_o seem_v to_o hold_v forth_o christ_n as_o incomplete_a till_o he_o have_v gather_v all_o his_o member_n into_o one_o body_n and_o certain_o christ_n will_v not_o appear_v incomplete_a in_o his_o body_n at_o the_o resurrection_n which_o he_o shall_v do_v shall_v he_o not_o by_o his_o power_n command_v the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o come_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n therefore_o he_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o part_n of_o himself_o to_o lie_v in_o the_o dust_n he_o will_v not_o appear_v at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n without_o a_o limb_n not_o without_o a_o hand_n not_o without_o a_o finger_n not_o without_o the_o least_o member_n thou_o that_o be_v the_o mean_a christian_n that_o apprehend_v thyself_o to_o be_v but_o as_o the_o toe_n of_o christ_n may_v be_v strong_o persuade_v of_o thy_o resurrection_n for_o i_o tell_v thou_o when_o christ_n shall_v appear_v at_o the_o great_a resurrection_n he_o will_v not_o be_v without_o a_o toe_n not_o without_o the_o low_a and_o most_o inferior_a member_n of_o his_o body_n he_o will_v appear_v in_o his_o fullness_n and_o all_o the_o saint_n gather_v together_o and_o make_v one_o with_o he_o in_o body_n and_o spirit_n be_v his_o fullness_n and_o completeness_n the_o king_n when_o he_o ride_v in_o triumph_n or_o to_o his_o great_a counsel_n he_o ride_v in_o his_o royal_a robe_n and_o in_o all_o his_o glory_n when_o christ_n shall_v appear_v the_o second_o time_n he_o will_v ride_v in_o triumph_n as_o a_o conqueror_n of_o all_o enemy_n and_o will_v ride_v to_o his_o great_a counsel_n or_o parliament_n of_o saint_n who_o be_v to_o judge_v the_o delinquent_n of_o the_o world_n and_o the_o saint_n be_v his_o glory_n 2_o cor._n 8.23_o and_o therefore_o they_o must_v be_v raise_v that_o he_o may_v be_v in_o his_o full_a glory_n if_o thou_o look_v upon_o thyself_o and_o thy_o body_n and_o consider_v how_o thou_o have_v dishonour_v god_n in_o thy_o body_n it_o may_v be_v thou_o may_v be_v startle_v in_o thy_o spirit_n and_o have_v such_o sad_a thought_n as_o these_o will_v christ_n ever_o raise_v this_o body_n as_o he_o that_o i_o have_v abuse_v to_o sin_n ●_o shall_v this_o body_n be_v glorify_v which_o i_o have_v dishonour_v by_o base_a and_o filthy_a lust_n but_o when_o thou_o have_v any_o such_o thought_n as_o these_o in_o which_o the_o devil_n appear_v to_o thou_o as_o a_o angel_n of_o light_n to_o make_v thou_o question_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o glorious_a resurrection_n of_o thy_o body_n then_o look_v beyond_o thyself_o beyond_o the_o sin_n that_o thou_o have_v commit_v against_o god_n in_o thy_o body_n and_o spirit_n and_o think_v thus_o with_o thyself_o this_o body_n though_o i_o have_v abuse_v it_o by_o lust_n and_o intemperance_n though_o i_o have_v dishonour_v god_n by_o the_o sin_n which_o i_o have_v commit_v and_o act_v as_o it_o be_v upon_o a_o stage_n in_o this_o body_n and_o flesh_n of_o i_o yet_o now_o the_o property_n be_v alter_v i_o be_o not_o now_o to_o look_v on_o it_o as_o my_o body_n i_o be_o to_o look_v on_o it_o as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n it_o be_v that_o body_n that_o he_o have_v wash_v from_o all_o sin_n in_o his_o own_o blood_n it_o be_v that_o body_n that_o he_o die_v for_o that_o he_o may_v cleanse_v it_o from_o filthiness_n and_o uncleanness_n it_o be_v his_o body_n he_o have_v right_a to_o it_o and_o a_o propriety_n in_o it_o it_o be_v he_o and_o none_o of_o i_o christ_n will_v not_o lose_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o himself_o and_o therefore_o it_o shall_v be_v raise_v in_o glory_n we_o see_v how_o unwilling_a man_n be_v to_o part_v with_o that_o which_o be_v their_o possession_n and_o inheritance_n we_o know_v how_o naboth_n answer_v ahab_n who_o will_v have_v have_v his_o vineyard_n 1_o king_n 21.3_o shall_v i_o give_v the_o inheritance_n of_o my_o father_n unto_o thou_o we_o be_v the_o inheritance_n the_o possession_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o he_o will_v not_o lose_v any_o part_n of_o his_o inheritance_n this_o argument_n be_v of_o sufficient_a strength_n to_o silence_v carnal_a reason_n if_o it_o be_v thorough_o weigh_v by_o we_o in_o the_o balance_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n for_o if_o a_o man_n look_v on_o himself_o as_o out_o of_o himself_o and_o the_o be_v which_o he_o have_v in_o the_o first_o adam_n and_o behold_v himself_o as_o one_o with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o a_o spiritual_a oneness_n see_v himself_o as_o such_o a_o part_n of_o christ_n as_o a_o hand_n or_o a_o foot_n may_v be_v say_v to_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o body_n and_o know_v christ_n have_v undertake_v to_o provide_v for_o his_o body_n and_o to_o own_o it_o for_o his_o own_o this_o will_v establish_v he_o in_o a_o unshaken_a confidence_n that_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n intend_v to_o raise_v his_o body_n and_o to_o assure_v and_o ascertain_v we_o that_o he_o will_v raise_v we_o he_o himself_o be_v rise_v in_o his_o own_o person_n if_o the_o head_n be_v above_o the_o water_n the_o whole_a body_n may_v be_v draw_v out_o of_o the_o water_n without_o drown_v christ_n our_o head_n be_v above_o water_n above_o the_o billow_n that_o overwhelm_v he_o be_v above_o sin_n that_o be_v charge_v on_o he_o be_v above_o the_o curse_n of_o the_o law_n that_o come_v upon_o he_o when_o he_o be_v make_v
a_o sacrifice_n for_o sin_n above_o the_o temptation_n of_o satan_n above_o the_o weakness_n of_o the_o flesh_n death_n can_v not_o hold_v he_o as_o her_o prisoner_n and_o this_o may_v ascertain_v we_o that_o we_o his_o member_n shall_v be_v draw_v up_o out_o of_o the_o water_n we_o shall_v be_v above_o all_o thing_n that_o we_o may_v call_v sin_n in_o ourselves_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o satan_n fiery_a dart_n we_o shall_v be_v above_o death_n that_o will_v be_v fulfil_v which_o be_v speak_v in_o the_o 1_o cor._n 15._o death_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o victory_n christ_n have_v already_o full_o conquer_v death_n in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o will_v conquer_v it_o in_o the_o person_n of_o all_o those_o that_o be_v his_o member_n enable_v they_o to_o believe_v in_o he_o christ_n do_v infuse_v spirit_n and_o fortitude_n into_o all_o his_o soldier_n by_o enable_v they_o to_o look_v on_o he_o their_o general_n respice_fw-la ad_fw-la ducem_fw-la look_v unto_o your_o captain_n be_v the_o old_a roman_a word_n of_o command_n to_o the_o common_a soldier_n to_o stir_v they_o up_o to_o imitate_v the_o valour_n and_o fortitude_n of_o their_o commander_n and_o christian_a soldier_n be_v make_v true_o valiant_a by_o look_v upon_o the_o fortitude_n and_o conquest_n of_o he_o who_o be_v the_o captain_n of_o their_o salvation_n heb._n 2.10_o and_o know_v their_o union_n with_o he_o they_o see_v their_o head_n &_o captain_n rise_v who_o they_o be_v which_o make_v they_o conqueror_n of_o death_n as_o his_o valiant_a soldier_n by_o a_o strong_a persuasion_n from_o he_o and_o in_o he_o of_o a_o future_a resurrection_n in_o the_o next_o place_n you_o see_v that_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n shall_v be_v raise_v for_o heaven_n as_o his_o body_n therefore_o this_o may_v teach_v we_o to_o glorify_v god_n in_o our_o body_n and_o spirit_n while_o we_o be_v here_o below_o if_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n will_v raise_v our_o body_n as_o his_o own_o body_n it_o be_v consonant_a to_o reason_n that_o we_o shall_v use_v our_o body_n as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n this_o consideration_n if_o god_n go_v along_o with_o it_o will_v be_v marvellous_a powerful_a to_o teach_v we_o to_o be_v holy_a not_o only_o in_o our_o spirit_n but_o in_o our_o body_n consider_v that_o they_o be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n will_v raise_v thy_o body_n at_o the_o last_o day_n as_o his_o own_o it_o be_v his_o body_n and_o not_o thou_o his_o spirit_n inform_v it_o he_o be_v owner_n and_o possessor_n of_o it_o thou_o be_v not_o thy_o own_o thou_o be_v buy_v with_o a_o price_n 1_o cor._n 6.20_o thererefore_o glorify_v god_n in_o thy_o body_n and_o in_o thy_o spirit_n which_o be_v go_n see_v christ_n will_v raise_v thy_o body_n as_o his_o body_n when_o it_o be_v dead_a therefore_o behave_v thyself_o towards_o thy_o body_n as_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n while_o thou_o be_v alive_a this_o be_v that_o that_o the_o apostle_n press_v from_o this_o consideration_n 1_o cor._n 6.15_o shall_v i_o take_v the_o member_n of_o christ_n and_o make_v they_o the_o member_n of_o a_o harlot_n a_o christian_a will_v not_o misdemeane_v himself_o towards_o his_o body_n if_o he_o do_v consider_v what_o his_o body_n be_v it_o be_v the_o house_n and_o palace_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o temple_n of_o god_n it_o be_v account_v a_o great_a fault_n for_o any_o man_n to_o misbehave_v himself_o in_o the_o temple_n of_o solomon_n which_o be_v a_o place_n then_o by_o god_n appointment_n more_o holy_a than_o other_o place_n our_o body_n be_v spiritual_a temple_n therefore_o defile_v not_o the_o temple_n of_o the_o lord_n bring_v not_o in_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n into_o the_o holy_a place_n bring_v not_o the_o filth_n of_o sin_n into_o it_o suffer_v not_o lust_n to_o lie_v in_o thy_o body_n suffer_v not_o pride_n in_o thy_o flesh_n sin_v not_o against_o thy_o own_o body_n in_o any_o kind_n take_v heed_n of_o riot_n and_o drunkenness_n take_v heed_n of_o those_o sin_n that_o be_v sin_n against_o the_o body_n because_o by_o they_o thou_o sin_v against_o the_o temple_n and_o house_n of_o god_n thou_o sin_v against_o that_o that_o be_v not_o thy_o own_o but_o be_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n our_o body_n shall_v not_o be_v like_o the_o egyptian_a temple_n that_o be_v stately_a edifice_n and_o building_n but_o in_o they_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o some_o noisome_a and_o filthy_a beast_n thy_o body_n be_v a_o stately_a edifice_n o_o set_v not_o up_o thy_o beastly_a lust_n as_o idol_n to_o be_v worship_v there_o galen_n that_o great_a physician_n when_o he_o come_v to_o anatomize_v man_n body_n he_o stand_v in_o admiration_n of_o the_o workmanship_n wonder_v at_o the_o skilful_a hand_n and_o finger_n of_o he_o that_o be_v the_o maker_n of_o it_o thou_o must_v not_o only_o look_v on_o thy_o body_n as_o it_o be_v a_o natural_a edifice_n but_o as_o it_o be_v a_o build_n for_o the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o a_o temple_n that_o christ_n have_v make_v choice_n of_o a_o temple_n for_o the_o holy_a spirit_n to_o dwell_v in_o therefore_o suffer_v not_o crocodile_n and_o noisome_a beast_n to_o sit_v there_o stoop_v not_o to_o lust_n fall_v not_o down_o on_o thy_o knee_n before_o thy_o corruption_n sacrifice_v not_o to_o uncleanness_n suffer_v not_o any_o sin_n to_o reign_v in_o thy_o mortal_a body_n rom._n 6._o thy_o body_n be_v the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n therefore_o ●et_a christ_n only_o reign_v in_o it_o sin_n shall_v not_o have_v dominion_n over_o you_o because_o you_o be_v not_o under_o the_o law_n but_o under_o grace_n rom._n 6.19_o as_o you_o have_v yield_v your_o member_n servant_n unto_o uncle_n annesse_n and_o to_o iniquity_n unto_o iniquity_n even_o so_o now_o yield_v your_o member_n servant_n to_o righteousness_n unto_o holiness_n if_o man_n do_v but_o consider_v the_o glory_n of_o their_o person_n the_o glory_n that_o god_n have_v put_v upon_o their_o spirit_n in_o make_v they_o one_o spirit_n with_o his_o own_o and_o the_o glory_n that_o god_n have_v put_v upon_o their_o body_n in_o make_v they_o his_o house_n temple_n and_o place_n of_o glory_n 〈◊〉_d dwell_v in_o through_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n i●_n will_v restrain_v they_o from_o sin_n that_o th●_n high_a and_o lofty_a one_o that_o inhabit_v eternity_n shall_v come_v and_o dwell_v in_o these_o humble_a and_o low_a cottage_n of_o we_o that_o the_o god_n o●_n glory_n shall_v come_v and_o dwell_v in_o house_n o●_n clay_n in_o house_n of_o mud_n in_o house_n that_o present_o must_v be_v pull_v down_o and_o lie_v in_o the_o dust_n o_o how_o shall_v the_o serious_a and_o spiritual_a meditation_n of_o this_o put_v bound_n and_o limit_n yea_o a_o period_n to_o our_o corruption_n as_o luther_n do_v report_n of_o one_o that_o be_v tempt_v to_o any_o sin_n by_o the_o devil_n will_v answer_v that_o she_o be_v christian_a thy_o body_n be_v christ_n by_o conquest_n he_o have_v dispossess_v the_o devil_n of_o the_o strong_a hold_n which_o he_o have_v in_o thy_o body_n and_o therefore_o suffer_v not_o the_o devil_n to_o rule_v there_o as_o he_o do_v when_o he_o be_v lord_n of_o thou_o if_o the_o devil_n come_v and_o tempt_v thou_o to_o commit_v any_o sin_n which_o be_v a_o sin_n that_o thou_o may_v act_v with_o thy_o body_n answer_v he_o thus_o satan_n away_o my_o ear_n can_v be_v open_a to_o thy_o temptation_n i_o can_v listen_v to_o thou_o to_o commit_v this_o sin_n my_o body_n be_v not_o my_o own_o but_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o when_o thou_o find_v thyself_o in_o thy_o body_n at_o any_o time_n unwilling_a for_o the_o service_n of_o christ_n consider_v with_o thyself_o my_o body_n be_v not_o my_o own_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o lord_n christ_n he_o will_v have_v a_o care_n of_o it_o at_o the_o resurrection_n he_o will_v not_o lose_v my_o earth_n or_o ash_n he_o will_v preserve_v my_o dust_n and_o keep_v it_o as_o a_o precious_a diamond_n in_o the_o casket_n of_o his_o own_o love_n therefore_o be_v willing_a to_o serve_v christ_n in_o thy_o body_n he_o own_v the_o body_n of_o saint_n here_o and_o will_v own_v they_o hereafter_o he_o have_v a_o special_a care_n of_o the_o bone_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o though_o the_o limb_n of_o their_o body_n be_v carry_v from_o one_o end_n of_o the_o world_n to_o the_o other_o and_o scatter_v in_o several_a place_n and_o climate_n yet_o by_o his_o power_n he_o will_v bring_v one_o limb_n to_o another_o therefore_o glorify_v christ_n in_o your_o body_n who_o have_v promise_v to_o quicken_v your_o mortal_a body_n by_o his_o spirit_n which_o he_o have_v give_v unto_o you_o rom._n 8.11_o in_o the_o
next_o place_n another_o use_n may_v be_v this_o to_o make_v we_o willing_a to_o sacrifice_v our_o body_n for_o the_o maintain_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n if_o christ_n be_v please_v to_o call_v we_o to_o suffer_v for_o he_o we_o do_v not_o know_v but_o this_o point_n may_v be_v very_o seasonable_a we_o know_v not_o how_o soon_o christ_n may_v call_v for_o our_o body_n to_o lie_v in_o prison_n for_o some_o truth_n he_o have_v discover_v to_o we_o which_o he_o have_v not_o make_v know_v to_o other_o why_o shall_v we_o be_v unwilling_a that_o christ_n shall_v suffer_v in_o his_o own_o body_n consider_v that_o the_o body_n which_o shall_v lie_v in_o prison_n it_o be_v not_o thy_o body_n thou_o be_v not_o able_a to_o raise_v it_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n therefore_o if_o it_o be_v the_o mind_n of_o christ_n that_o this_o body_n shall_v lie_v in_o prison_n say_v not_o my_o will_n but_o thy_o will_n be_v do_v and_o if_o christ_n will_v lead_v thou_o further_o if_o he_o will_v not_o only_o lead_v thou_o to_o be_v imprison_v in_o thy_o body_n for_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o if_o he_o call_v thou_o to_o give_v up_o thy_o life_n to_o loose_v it_o for_o he_o that_o thou_o may_v find_v it_o again_o in_o he_o let_v this_o consideration_n make_v thou_o willing_a to_o be_v a_o martyr_n and_o sufferer_n for_o the_o lord_n christ_n why_o shall_v not_o he_o do_v what_o he_o will_v with_o his_o own_o if_o he_o will_v lead_v thou_o to_o a_o pillory_n to_o a_o hot_a iron_n to_o receive_v a_o mark_n in_o thy_o body_n for_o he_o to_o a_o halter_n fire_n and_o faggot_n be_v content_v and_o b●_n confident_a that_o if_o christ_n ever_o call_v the_o to_o suffer_v he_o will_v give_v thou_o power_n and_o strength_n for_o to_o suffer_v in_o thy_o body_n because_o he_o can_v forget_v to_o be_v mindful_a of_o his_o own_o body_n we_o know_v how_o christ_n threaten_v those_o that_o be_v ashamed_a of_o he_o and_o his_o word_n in_o a_o adulterous_a and_o sinful_a generation_n mark_v 8.38_o of_o he_o say_v he_o shall_v the_o son_n of_o man_n be_v ashamed_a when_o he_o shall_v come_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o father_n with_o power_n and_o great_a glory_n as_o christ_n will_v no_o own_o but_o be_v ashamed_a of_o wicked_a ungodly_a and_o unbelieving_a man_n that_o make_v profession_n of_o his_o name_n in_o word_n without_o his_o power_n in_o their_o heart_n so_o christ_n will_v own_v the_o body_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o such_o who_o true_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o have_v lay_v down_o their_o life_n for_o he_o and_o they_o shall_v find_v their_o life_n again_o at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a therefore_o let_v this_o make_v we_o willing_a to_o suffer_v i_o be_o the_o more_o willing_a to_o press_v this_o point_n because_o i_o see_v a_o spirit_n of_o baseness_n and_o cowardinesse_n in_o christian_n i_o find_v not_o that_o courage_n in_o the_o heart_n and_o spirit_n of_o christian_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o they_o the_o complaint_n of_o jereniah_n may_v just_o be_v take_v up_o in_o our_o time_n he_o say_v jer._n 9.3_o none_o be_v valiant_a for_o the_o truth_n there_o be_v scarce_o a_o man_n that_o appear_v for_o truth_n in_o the_o height_n of_o zeal_n man_n will_v rather_o sin_v against_o conscience_n to_o comply_v with_o the_o world_n then_o oppose_v themselves_o against_o the_o corruption_n of_o the_o world_n they_o will_v rather_o wimme_v down_o with_o the_o tide_n and_o stream_n ●f_o the_o world_n then_o oppose_v the_o wicked_a stream_n ●f_o worldly_a corruption_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v that_o many_o profes●rs_n have_v their_o eye_n so_o much_o upon_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n from_o this_o corruption_n and_o un●undnesse_n in_o their_o heart_n they_o will_v be_v of_o ●e_n same_o religion_n with_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n because_o they_o will_v not_o suffer_v any_o thing_n for_o ●e_n lord._n they_o look_v on_o christ_n in_o their_o apprehension_n as_o precious_a but_o when_o they_o be_v tell_v of_o a_o crucify_a christ_n of_o a_o persecute_a christ_n of_o christ_n hang_v on_o a_o tree_n a_o christ_n to_o be_v spit_v upon_o condemn_v and_o persecute_v to_o suffer_v in_o the_o world_n with_o the_o young_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n they_o go_v away_o sorrowful_a from_o such_o a_o sermon_n they_o will_v have_v christ_n and_o the_o world_n together_o but_o if_o they_o can_v have_v christ_n but_o they_o must_v leave_v the_o world_n they_o have_v rather_o part_v with_o christ_n then_o with_o the_o world_n they_o be_v like_o joseph_n of_o arimathea_n that_o take_v christ_n and_o leave_v the_o cross_n behind_o he_o so_o delicate_a professor_n in_o our_o time_n they_o will_v take_v christ_n but_o they_o will_v be_v sure_a to_o leave_v the_o cross_n they_o will_v be_v wise_a in_o their_o way_n they_o will_v profess_v religion_n no_o further_o than_o they_o may_v hold_v the_o world_n and_o religion_n together_o one_o reason_n of_o this_o cowardice_n and_o baseness_n of_o spirit_n be_v this_o because_o they_o do_v not_o consider_v that_o the_o body_n of_o saint_n be_v under_o the_o care_n and_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o jesus_n and_o that_o we_o can_v glorify_v god_n more_o than_o by_o lie_v in_o prison_n in_o love_n to_o christ_n or_o die_v for_o he_o if_o it_o be_v his_o pleasure_n to_o call_v we_o to_o seal_v his_o truth_n with_o our_o blood_n and_o if_o we_o do_v consider_v what_o a_o holy_a flame_n and_o heavenly_a spark_n be_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o spirit_n of_o primitive_a christian_n in_o believe_v this_o truth_n that_o they_o account_v it_o their_o great_a honour_n to_o be_v dishonour_v for_o christ_n their_o great_a credit_n to_o be_v discredit_v by_o the_o world_n for_o he_o their_o liberty_n to_o be_v imprison_v their_o life_n to_o die_v at_o a_o stake_n for_o profess_v this_o glorious_a truth_n of_o christ_n discover_v to_o their_o soul_n phil._n 1.21_o it_o will_v put_v fire_n and_o spirit_n into_o we_o and_o this_o lethargy_n that_o be_v upon_o we_o will_v speedy_o be_v cure_v indeed_o we_o be_v a_o lukewarm_a people_n the_o discretion_n and_o prudence_n of_o politic_a professor_n in_o our_o time_n have_v swallow_v up_o zeal_n in_o the_o time_n of_o popery_n there_o be_v zeal_n without_o knowledge_n in_o this_o kingdom_n and_o now_o we_o have_v knowledge_n without_o zeal_n and_o the_o ground_n of_o this_o be_v this_o because_o either_o we_o do_v not_o meditate_v on_o this_o truth_n or_o else_o because_o we_o be_v rather_o cold_a and_o formal_a then_o true_o spiritual_a in_o the_o meditation_n of_o it_o which_o shall_v engage_v we_o as_o we_o tender_v the_o glory_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v more_o frequent_a and_o serious_a in_o our_o contemplation_n concern_v it_o for_o the_o future_a i_o find_v that_o christian_n make_v much_o use_n of_o this_o point_n in_o former_a day_n though_o i_o do_v not_o whole_o justify_v their_o practice_n for_o as_o it_o be_v our_o custom_n to_o salute_v one_o another_o when_o we_o meet_v so_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o some_o christian_n when_o they_o meet_v one_o another_o to_o ●●tter_v these_o word_n christus_fw-la resurrexit_fw-la christ_n ●●risen_a they_o apprehend_v it_o sa_o a_o point_n that_o come_v with_o such_o power_n on_o their_o spirit_n to_o enable_v they_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o suffer_v for_o the_o lord_n that_o this_o be_v their_o salutation_n in_o the_o time_n of_o persecution_n assure_v themselves_o that_o he_o which_o be_v rise_v in_o his_o own_o person_n as_o head_n will_v arise_v in_o all_o saint_n as_o his_o member_n and_o this_o be_v that_o that_o make_v they_o so_o willing_a to_o jeopard_v their_o life_n for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n we_o read_v of_o paul_n act._n 21.13_o that_o when_o they_o exhort_v he_o not_o to_o go_v to_o jerusalem_n because_o the_o spirit_n in_o agabus_n have_v make_v it_o know_v that_o he_o shall_v be_v persecute_v and_o bind_v when_o he_o come_v thither_o why_o do_v you_o weep_v and_o break_v my_o heart_n say_v he_o i_o be_o not_o only_o willing_a to_o be_v bind_v at_o jerusalem_n but_o to_o do_v there_o for_o the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n it_o be_v a_o heart-breaking_a to_o paul_n to_o tell_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o go_v to_o suffer_v at_o jerusalem_n ●_o if_o it_o be_v his_o great_a suffering_n not_o 〈◊〉_d suffer_v for_o the_o gospel_n but_o we_o have_v learn_v this_o point_n by_o rote_n and_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n few_o understand_v we_o talk_v of_o it_o in_o a_o parrat-li●●_a way_n and_o we_o have_v mumble_v it_o over_o in_o o●_n creed_n i_o believe_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n but_o few_o have_v dive_v into_o the_o bottom_n it_o or_o suck_v the_o sweetness_n and_o spirituali●●_n
which_o lie_v in_o it_o or_o else_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v 〈◊〉_d lukewarm_a in_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n but_o 〈◊〉_d the_o future_a let_v we_o look_v up_o to_o god_n that_o may_v give_v we_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a wisdom_n that_o so_o we_o may_v have_v a_o more_o divine_a and_o spiritual_a knowledge_n of_o it_o he_o that_o be_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o life_n of_o saint_n be_v the_o only_a teacher_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n it_o be_v report_v of_o the_o pelican_n that_o her_o young_a be_v poison_a by_o the_o serpent_n she_o do_v give_v they_o life_n by_o her_o own_o death_n and_o blood_n so_o christ_n do_v quicken_v we_o his_o member_n to_o a_o life_n of_o immortality_n by_o his_o own_o death_n and_o blood_n and_o do_v give_v we_o the_o knowledge_n of_o life_n in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o death_n bloodshedding_n and_o resurrection_n which_o do_v enforce_v the_o necessity_n of_o our_o resurrection_n from_o he_o who_o be_v our_o head_n and_o this_o be_v the_o persuasion_n of_o true_a saint_n and_o as_o it_o be_v report_v of_o the_o phoenix_n that_o when_o she_o be_v to_o die_v she_o bring_v spice_n into_o her_o nest_n which_o be_v set_v on_o fire_n she_o herself_o be_v burn_v in_o the_o fire_n and_o turn_v to_o ash_n and_o out_o of_o her_o ash_n come_v a_o new_a phoenix_n so_o a_o true_a christian_a know_v that_o though_o he_o may_v be_v burn_v and_o turn_v into_o ash_n yet_o out_o of_o his_o own_o ash_n his_o body_n shall_v be_v raise_v again_o to_o a_o new_a life_n of_o glory_n which_o do_v arm_v he_o against_o the_o fear_n of_o death_n and_o persecution_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o christ_n again_o this_o do_v discover_v what_o enemy_n they_o be_v to_o christ_n his_o spirit_n and_o member_n who_o by_o their_o wile_n subtlety_n and_o hellish_a logic_n will_v destroy_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n they_o will_v rob_v christ_n of_o his_o member_n who_o do_v here_o lay_v claim_n to_o the_o body_n of_o dead_a saint_n they_o will_v make_v the_o spirit_n a_o liar_n who_o do_v seal_v up_o saint_n unto_o the_o day_n of_o redemption_n eph._n 5.30_o and_o in_o who_o they_o wait_v for_o the_o redemption_n of_o their_o body_n rom._n 8.23_o they_o will_v rob_v saint_n of_o their_o comfort_n which_o god_n do_v give_v they_o in_o the_o believe_a of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v commit_v unto_o the_o earth_n i_o be_o the_o more_o earnest_n against_o these_o man_n because_o i_o know_v these_o factor_n for_o antichrist_n be_v both_o active_a and_o subtle_a as_o the_o serpent_n do_v endeavour_v to_o beguile_v eve_n 2_o cor._n 11.3_o so_o these_o endeavour_n to_o undermine_v man_n and_o to_o draw_v they_o from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n one_o and_o a_o chief_a part_n of_o christ_n simple_a gospel_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o our_o body_n by_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n when_o paul_n preach_v this_o at_o athens_n the_o stoic_n and_o epicure_n do_v look_v upon_o he_o as_o a_o babbler_n and_o this_o piece_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v always_o account_v foolishness_n to_o the_o learned_a greek_n and_o as_o the_o apostle_n be_v jealous_a of_o they_o for_o fear_v they_o shall_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n so_o be_o i_o jealous_a over_o poor_a christian_n know_v that_o you_o shall_v meet_v with_o man_n that_o pretend_v to_o be_v spiritual_a man_n of_o great_a light_n wisdom_n knowledge_n and_o deep_a understanding_n and_o when_o you_o have_v dive_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o their_o spirit_n this_o be_v all_o you_o shall_v find_v in_o they_o which_o they_o will_v labour_v to_o draw_v you_o to_o assent_v unto_o to_o wit_n that_o there_o be_v no_o resurrection_n but_o in_o the_o spirit_n no_o corporal_a resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n at_o all_o these_o be_v like_o those_o of_o who_o the_o apostle_n speak_v in_o his_o time_n that_o corrupt_a or_o deal_v deceitful_o with_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o metaphor_n be_v borrow_v from_o cheat_a vintner_n or_o cozen_a merchant_n that_o adulterate_a their_o commodity_n to_o make_v they_o vendible_a as_o beza_n do_v well_o observe_v so_o these_o that_o their_o horrid_a opinion_n and_o blasphemy_n may_v be_v vendible_a they_o endeavour_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o sophisticate_a the_o word_n and_o adulterate_a it_o from_o the_o plain_a and_o simple_a meaning_n of_o the_o holy-ghost_n therefore_o let_v i_o in_o love_n to_o your_o soul_n once_o more_o desire_v you_o that_o you_o will_v be_v watchful_a that_o none_o of_o these_o draw_v you_o away_o from_o these_o truth_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n which_o have_v be_v discover_v to_o you_o and_o have_v be_v seal_v upon_o your_o heart_n and_o spirit_n by_o his_o own_o bless_a spirit_n the_o devil_n do_v sow_v the_o tare_n of_o familisme_n in_o man_n heart_n while_o they_o sleep_v but_o i_o be_o confident_a that_o you_o shall_v believe_v they_o though_o for_o a_o time_n you_o may_v be_v draw_v to_o question_v they_o and_o the_o resurrection_n as_o those_o in_o the_o 1_o cor._n 15._o and_o may_v be_v delude_v by_o familisticall_a fancy_n and_o notion_n as_o some_o good_a christian_n have_v be_v yet_o if_o god_n have_v lay_v hold_n on_o you_o and_o draw_v you_o to_o he_o in_o christ_n he_o will_v not_o total_o leave_v you_o to_o these_o damnable_a opinion_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a these_o serpent_n will_v deceive_v even_o the_o elect_a but_o christ_n intimate_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o they_o shall_v ever_o deceive_v the_o elect._n and_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o such_o man_n as_o these_o 2_o tim._n 2.19_o say_v that_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o lord_n stand_v sure_a have_v this_o seal_n of_o his_o everlasting_a election_n the_o lord_n know_v who_o be_v he_o therefore_o let_v not_o man_n deceive_v you_o but_o live_v in_o the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o in_o that_o spirit_n that_o be_v give_v forth_o in_o the_o gospel_n take_v heed_n of_o these_o impostor_n hug_v not_o the_o devil_n in_o samuel_n mantle_n suffer_v not_o the_o devil_n to_o devour_v you_o in_o a_o sheep_n skin_n but_o walk_v in_o the_o plain_a simple_a path_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n and_o that_o you_o may_v do_v this_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o give_v you_o some_o few_o direction_n for_o the_o preserve_n you_o in_o the_o truth_n and_o the_o secure_n of_o you_o from_o this_o infection_n of_o familisme_n first_o i_o wish_v you_o to_o apply_v yourselves_o to_o the_o read_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v able_a to_o make_v you_o wise_a unto_o salvation_n through_o faith_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n 2_o tim._n 5.15_o when_o these_o man_n come_v unto_o you_o it_o may_v be_v they_o will_v present_v you_o with_o book_n write_v in_o a_o strange_a language_n stuff_v with_o swell_a nonsense_n and_o affect_v phrase_n that_o none_o understand_v but_o those_o that_o be_v acquaint_v with_o their_o blasphemous_a horrid_a and_o damnable_a opinion_n and_o will_v endeavour_v to_o lead_v you_o from_o the_o scripture_n and_o if_o your_o oppose_v the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n against_o their_o delusion_n some_o of_o they_o will_v affirm_v that_o peter_n and_o paul_n when_o they_o write_v their_o epistle_n have_v but_o a_o little_a light_n be_v but_o child_n they_o be_v enlighten_v man_n grow_v up_o unto_o the_o stature_n of_o perfection_n labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o bright_a star_n of_o truth_n do_v shine_v no_o where_o so_o glorious_o as_o in_o the_o old_a popish_a author_n and_o new_a familisticall_a scribbler_n which_o they_o will_v present_v unto_o you_o therefore_o that_o you_o may_v not_o be_v draw_v away_o by_o these_o keep_v to_o the_o scripture_n and_o know_v that_o there_o be_v no_o book_n in_o which_o there_o be_v more_o light_n then_o in_o the_o scripture_n or_o from_o which_o you_o may_v expect_v more_o light_n if_o you_o look_v to_o god_n for_o his_o spirit_n to_o open_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n in_o the_o read_n of_o it_o dulcius_fw-la ex_fw-la ipso_fw-la fonte_fw-la bibuntur_fw-la aquae_fw-la water_n be_v sweet_a at_o the_o wellhead_n and_o truth_n do_v present_v themselves_o most_o sweet_o unto_o we_o in_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v the_o well_o and_o fountain_n from_o which_o other_o writer_n do_v fetch_v the_o truth_n which_o we_o find_v in_o their_o writing_n he_o that_o addict_v himself_o more_o to_o the_o read_n of_o man_n writing_n then_o the_o scripture_n be_v like_o one_o that_o leave_v the_o fountain_n where_o the_o water_n be_v pure_a have_v rather_o drink_v in_o the_o channel_n where_o they_o be_v impure_a and_o muddy_a true_o if_o you_o grow_v in_o grace_n you_o will_v grow_v in_o like_n and_o approve_v the_o holy_a
scripture_n though_o it_o be_v write_v in_o a_o plain_a style_n and_o though_o there_o be_v not_o that_o humane_a eloquence_n and_o rhetoric_n in_o it_o which_o you_o shall_v find_v in_o the_o preach_n of_o some_o man_n who_o preach_v themselves_o rather_o then_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o gospel_n that_o man_n be_v a_o good_a proficient_a in_o the_o school_n of_o christ_n that_o every_o day_n grow_v more_o and_o more_o in_o love_n with_o the_o bless_a and_o holy_a scripture_n i_o remember_v what_o a_o orator_n speak_v in_o the_o commendation_n of_o cicero_n faith_n he_o be_v a_o good_a proficient_a in_o oratory_n that_o delight_v to_o read_v the_o oration_n of_o cicero_n so_o he_o be_v a_o good_a proficient_a in_o christianity_n that_o in_o believe_v delight_n in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n therefore_o you_o shall_v find_v that_o man_n that_o fall_v off_o to_o these_o opinion_n present_o they_o slight_v the_o scripture_n and_o either_o whole_o deny_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o else_o they_o overthrow_v the_o truth_n of_o it_o by_o allegorise_v those_o thing_n that_o have_v a_o plain_a simple_a historical_a meaning_n in_o they_o that_o be_v the_o first_o rule_n search_v the_o scripture_n and_o there_o you_o shall_v see_v no_o such_o fancy_n and_o fond_a notion_n as_o these_o man_n have_v the_o second_o direction_n be_v this_o take_v heed_n of_o those_o that_o preach_v not_o the_o gospel_n in_o a_o plain_a familiar_a way_n you_o may_v know_v some_o familist_n by_o their_o bombastick_a language_n they_o speak_v not_o in_o the_o language_n of_o canaan_n in_o their_o sermon_n but_o they_o have_v a_o affect_a language_n of_o their_o own_o that_o few_o understand_v but_o those_o that_o have_v apply_v themselves_o much_o to_o the_o study_n of_o their_o writing_n and_o be_v well_o acquaint_v with_o their_o opinion_n and_o by_o their_o chemical_a dark_a expression_n and_o fond_a notion_n they_o delude_v poor_a soul_n that_o think_v they_o be_v spiritual_a man_n and_o that_o great_a thing_n be_v reveal_v to_o they_o which_o be_v not_o discover_v to_o other_o saint_n when_o there_o be_v nothing_o but_o horrid_a antichristianisme_n or_o atheism_n lie_v at_o the_o bottom_n of_o their_o heart_n which_o shall_v be_v evident_a when_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n 2_o tim._n 3.9_o their_o folly_n shall_v be_v manifest_a unt_n all_o man_n paul_n say_v when_o he_o come_v to_o preach_v at_o corinth_n 1_o cor._n 2.4_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o excellency_n of_o speech_n nor_o in_o the_o entice_a word_n of_o man_n wisdom_n but_o in_o plainness_n of_o speech_n in_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o power_n and_o it_o be_v the_o command_n of_o god_n that_o if_o any_o man_n speak_v he_o shall_v speak_v as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n 1_o pet._n 4.11_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o as_o do_v relate_v to_o the_o manner_n of_o speak_v as_o well_o as_o to_o the_o matter_n which_o be_v to_o be_v deliver_v man_n be_v to_o speak_v as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n speak_v nothing_o but_o truth_n and_o as_o the_o oracle_n of_o god_n for_o plainness_n of_o speech_n st._n paul_n speak_v of_o true_a gospel-preacher_n say_v we_o use_v great_a plainness_n of_o speech_n the_o scripture_n be_v in_o a_o plain_a familiar_a style_n the_o sermon_n of_o our_o saviour_n be_v plain_a familiar_a sermon_n adorn_v with_o plain_a simile_n and_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o imitate_v their_o master_n so_o shall_v our_o discourse_n be_v with_o all_o plainness_n of_o speech_n &_o demonstration_n of_o the_o spirit_n &_o power_n that_o the_o glory_n may_v be_v give_v not_o to_o the_o eloquence_n of_o our_o tongue_n but_o to_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n in_o convert_v of_o soul_n therefore_o take_v heed_n of_o those_o that_o lead_v you_o from_o the_o plainness_n of_o preach_v hide_v their_o curse_a error_n in_o a_o thicket_n and_o cloud_n of_o dark_a work_n and_o unscripture-like_a expression_n not_o hold_v fast_o the_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n according_a to_o god_n precept_n 2_o tim._n 1.13_o 2_o cor._n 3.12_o look_v on_o the_o scripture_n and_o see_v how_o paul_n speak_v of_o justification_n of_o remission_n of_o sin_n of_o the_o resurrection_n and_o so_o let_v we_o preach_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o truth_n of_o christ_n but_o those_o that_o have_v language_n not_o like_o the_o language_n of_o scripture_n suspect_v they_o they_o make_v a_o fair_a show_n there_o be_v great_a glory_n and_o outward_a pomp_n in_o their_o word_n but_o latet_fw-la anguis_fw-la there_o be_v a_o snake_n that_o lie_v under_o these_o fine_a green_a herb_n take_v heed_n of_o such_o man_n and_o look_v more_o for_o the_o inward_a power_n and_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o speak_n of_o man_n then_o for_o fine_a word_n phrase_n notion_n and_o simile_n that_o man_n may_v make_v use_n of_o to_o win_v you_o to_o the_o approbation_n of_o their_o error_n the_o three_o direction_n which_o i_o shall_v present_v unto_o you_o be_v this_o take_v heed_n of_o spiritual_a pride_n for_o one_o reason_n why_o so_o many_o fall_n off_o from_o the_o truth_n to_o these_o horrid_a opinion_n be_v from_o a_o principle_n of_o spiritual_a pride_n some_o of_o these_o thought_n that_o they_o have_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o knowledge_n wisdom_n and_o understanding_n and_o that_o they_o understand_v as_o much_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o mystery_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o have_v hear_v as_o much_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n as_o any_o can_v preach_v of_o it_o and_o of_o the_o resurrection_n as_o any_o can_v speak_v they_o know_v as_o they_o suppose_v what_o this_o man_n speak_v and_o what_o the_o other_o preach_v what_o this_o man_n judgement_n be_v what_o author_n do_v write_v and_o they_o know_v perfect_o as_o they_o imagine_v whatsoever_o lie_v in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v embrace_v for_o truth_n and_o by_o their_o pride_n do_v surfeit_v of_o their_o knowledge_n suppose_v that_o they_o know_v all_o point_n of_o the_o gospel_n when_o in_o deed_n and_o in_o truth_n they_o know_v nothing_o of_o the_o gospel_n save_o spiritual_o or_o practical_o so_o that_o as_o the_o people_n of_o israel_n come_v to_o loath_a manna_n and_o lust_v after_o other_o food_n so_o these_o be_v puff_v up_o with_o spiritual_a pride_n begin_v to_o loathe_v the_o heavenly_a manna_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o disesteem_v it_o for_o the_o plainness_n and_o simplicity_n that_o be_v in_o it_o and_o nothing_o now_o will_v please_v they_o but_o new_a fancy_n therefore_o they_o must_v have_v sermon_n dress_v in_o another_o fashion_n new_o cook_v new_a notion_n and_o new_a conceit_n and_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v new_a please_v they_o better_o than_o the_o old_a and_o ancient_a truth_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n but_o when_o god_n teach_v a_o man_n to_o understand_v the_o gospel_n aright_o the_o more_o he_o know_v the_o gospel_n the_o more_o he_o see_v his_o ignorance_n of_o the_o gospel_n ●_o that_o man_n see_v he_o never_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n full_o that_o man_n see_v that_o h●●_n have_v not_o sufficient_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n o●_n sanctification_n this_o man_n look_v not_o on_o his_o knowledge_n mere_o as_o it_o be_v speculative_a but_o as_o it_o be_v practical_a when_o he_o see_v any_o unbelief_n in_o his_o heart_n he_o say_v within_o himself_o i_o have_v not_o sufficient_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n when_o he_o see_v any_o hatred_n in_o his_o spirit_n to_o that_o which_o be_v good_a and_o any_o inclination_n to_o that_o which_o be_v evil_a he_o wise_o conclude_v i_o have_v not_o sufficient_o learn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o sanctification_n when_o he_o find_v sadness_n in_o his_o spirit_n o_o say_v he_o there_o be_v more_o in_o the_o gospel_n concern_v the_o spirit_n of_o joy_n and_o consolation_n than_o i_o have_v attain_v to_o when_o he_o read_v sundry_a enigmatical_a and_o difficult_a place_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o in_o the_o revelation_n and_o have_v not_o attain_v to_o the_o spiritual_a meaning_n of_o they_o o_o say_v he_o i_o be_o not_o sufficient_o acquaint_v with_o the_o truth_n which_o lie_v hide_v in_o the_o word_n though_o i_o may_v have_v knowledge_n enough_o to_o carry_v i_o to_o heaven_n yet_o i_o be_o very_o ignorant_a of_o many_o truth_n of_o christ_n thus_o a_o man_n that_o true_o live_v the_o life_n of_o faith_n he_o be_v not_o puff_v up_o as_o these_o be_v that_o fall_v to_o these_o hideous_a and_o blasphemous_a notion_n and_o opinion_n hab._n 2._o he_o that_o be_v lift_v up_o his_o heart_n be_v not_o upright_o but_o the_o just_a shall_v live_v by_o his_o faith_n you_o shall_v find_v that_o
familisticall_a spirit_n be_v puff_v up_o with_o a_o conceit_n of_o their_o knowledge_n notion_n and_o speculation_n when_o indeed_o they_o be_v whole_o carnal_a and_o understand_v not_o the_o deep_a thing_n of_o god_n grace_n in_o the_o face_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o he_o that_o true_o walk_v with_o god_n faithful_o that_o man_n walk_v humble_o with_o his_o god_n true_a faith_n as_o it_o exalt_v we_o and_o show_v we_o our_o privilege_n and_o honour_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n so_o it_o humble_v we_o by_o the_o sight_n of_o what_o be_v in_o ourselves_o the_o light_n of_o grace_n will_v as_o well_o discover_v what_o we_o be_v in_o our_o fleshly_a part_n as_o what_o we_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o these_o that_o be_v thus_o enlighten_v shall_v never_o fall_v total_o and_o final_o from_o the_o pure_a and_o simple_a gospel_n of_o christ_n the_o spirit_n in_o they_o do_v assure_v they_o that_o they_o shall_v abide_v in_o he_o john_n 2.27_o therefore_o beware_v of_o pride_n the_o bane_n of_o angel_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o man_n and_o the_o mother_n of_o familisme_n but_o grow_v in_o humility_n conceit_n not_o that_o you_o be_v full_a when_o you_o be_v empty_a as_o long_o as_o the_o widow_n have_v empty_a vessel_n the_o oil_n do_v still_o run_v so_o as_o long_o as_o there_o be_v a_o empty_a vessel_n in_o thy_o heart_n the_o oil_n of_o grace_n shall_v flow_v in_o unto_o thou_o the_o four_o direction_n take_v heed_n that_o thou_o do_v not_o embrace_v the_o doctrine_n of_o free_a will_n and_o fall_v away_o from_o grace_n some_o of_o the_o familist_n of_o the_o city_n have_v be_v great_a stickler_n to_o uphold_v these_o point_n and_o to_o revive_v arminian_n tenet_n among_o professor_n before_o they_o do_v arrive_v to_o the_o top_n and_o height_n of_o familisme_n that_o man_n will_v not_o stand_v long_o who_o have_v no_o strength_n but_o his_o own_o leg_n to_o uphold_v he_o neither_o will_v that_o man_n stand_v long_o for_o christ_n who_o stand_v more_o by_o the_o strength_n of_o his_o own_o will_n then_o by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n grace_n adam_n stand_v in_o his_o own_o strength_n lose_v his_o happiness_n when_o he_o be_v wise_a and_o righteous_a and_o can_v thou_o maintain_v thyself_o in_o a_o happy_a condition_n by_o thy_o own_o strength_n when_o thou_o be_v unrighteous_a true_a saint_n be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n 1_o pet._n 1.5_o the_o word_n be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v a_o keep_n of_o any_o thing_n as_o by_o a_o guard_n god_n grace_n be_v a_o guard_n by_o which_o he_o do_v keep_v all_o his_o in_o the_o way_n of_o salvation_n so_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v fall_v away_o from_o his_o grace_n it_o be_v no_o wonder_n then_o if_o they_o fall_v way_n from_o grace_n to_o familisme_n who_o do_v maintain_v that_o saint_n may_v fall_v away_o from_o grace_n the_o five_o direction_n be_v not_o loose_a or_o licentious_a in_o life_n or_o neglective_a of_o sanctification_n under_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o freegrace_n and_o justification_n many_o of_o the_o profess_a familist_n which_o we_o meet_v with_o have_v be_v loose_a professor_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n the_o libertine_n do_v live_v next_o door_n to_o the_o familist_n and_o libertinism_n be_v the_o broad_a road_n and_o highway_n or_o beaten-path_n to_o familisme_n last_o take_v heed_n of_o vain_a jangle_n and_o dispute_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n religion_n be_v more_o in_o practice_n than_o controversy_n or_o speculation_n be_v more_o conscientious_a to_o practice_v what_o thou_o know_v then_o curious_a in_o dispute_v about_o thing_n that_o thou_o know_v not_o and_o let_v thy_o ear_n be_v rather_o open_v to_o those_o that_o will_v instruct_v thou_o then_o to_o those_o that_o will_v dispute_v with_o thou_o the_o dispute_n and_o controversy_n of_o the_o time_n have_v make_v many_o atheist_n and_o familist_n in_o these_o time_n origen_n speak_v of_o these_o word_n in_o the_o 21._o exod._n 22._o if_o man_n strive_v and_o hurt_v a_o woman_n with_o child_n so_o that_o her_o fruit_n depart_v from_o she_o etc._n etc._n do_v thus_o allegorise_v they_o the_o woman_n with_o child_n say_v he_o be_v weak_a christian_n who_o be_v with_o child_n and_o ready_a to_o bring_v forth_o truth_n the_o man_n that_o strive_v be_v professor_n that_o with_o bitterness_n and_o violence_n do_v contend_v for_o their_o opinion_n and_o while_o they_o strive_v in_o heat_n and_o bitterness_n for_o their_o opinion_n the_o christian_n miscarry_v and_o do_v not_o bring_v forth_o truth_n how_o many_o who_o do_v seem_v to_o have_v christ_n almost_o form_v in_o they_o have_v miscarry_v and_o fall_v to_o familisme_n by_o the_o strive_n and_o contention_n of_o professor_n that_o thou_o may_v therefore_o learn_v wisdom_n by_o their_o folly_n and_o stand_v more_o steadfast_o by_o their_o fall_n treasure_v up_o the_o truth_n which_o have_v be_v deliver_v and_o imprint_v they_o upon_o your_o memory_n and_o because_o reason_n precept_n exhortation_n and_o rule_n do_v little_a advantage_n we_o to_o preserve_v we_o in_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n without_o the_o power_n of_o he_o who_o be_v truth_n look_v unto_o he_o to_o preserve_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o your_o union_n with_o himself_o and_o his_o father_n in_o the_o spirit_n and_o to_o ascertain_v you_o of_o your_o resurrection_n as_o part_v of_o his_o body_n and_o to_o enable_v you_o as_o his_o member_n to_o glorify_v he_o and_o his_o father_n in_o the_o spirit_n for_o evermore_o amen_n the_o great_a joy_n of_o saint_n in_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n sermon_n iii_o preach_v on_o a_o thanksgiving_n day_n isaiah_n 26.19_o awake_v and_o sing_v you_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o dust_n for_o thy_o dew_n be_v as_o the_o dew_n of_o herb_n and_o the_o earth_n shall_v cast_v forth_o her_o dead_a i_o have_v show_v unto_o you_o that_o these_o word_n be_v a_o present_a comfort_n or_o cordial_a give_v by_o god_n unto_o his_o people_n for_o the_o refreshment_n of_o their_o languish_a spirit_n and_o sad_a heart_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o affliction_n and_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v arise_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v arise_v as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n he_o be_v their_o head_n they_o shall_v rise_v as_o his_o menber_n he_o die_v to_o bring_v his_o people_n to_o a_o spiritual_a oneness_n with_o himself_o and_o his_o father_n they_o be_v his_o possession_n and_o inheritance_n and_o as_o a_o body_n may_v proper_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o that_o soul_n which_o do_v inform_v it_o so_o christ_n shall_v be_v the_o spiritual_a form_n and_o soul_n to_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v raise_v at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o general_a resurrection_n by_o these_o and_o other_o spiritual_a consideration_n i_o do_v evidence_n this_o truth_n that_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v he_o raise_v as_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o their_o bless_a siviour_n my_o dead_a body_n shall_v they_o rise_v i_o shall_v now_o by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n brief_o open_a unto_o you_o the_o word_n that_o follow_v in_o the_o text_n and_o make_v choice_n of_o one_o proposition_n from_o they_o which_o may_v heighten_v your_o spiritual_a joy_n this_o day_n upon_o which_o i_o shall_v enlarge_v myself_o and_o so_o shall_v commend_v you_o and_o what_o i_o shall_v deliver_v to_o you_o to_o the_o blessing_n of_o the_o almighty_a the_o next_o word_n which_o do_v present_v itself_o to_o we_o in_o the_o text_n be_v this_o awake_v which_o do_v afford_v we_o this_o observation_n that_o death_n be_v but_o a_o sleep_n it_o be_v night_n for_o a_o time_n with_o the_o saint_n while_o they_o sleep_v in_o their_o grave_n but_o they_o shall_v awake_v at_o the_o morning_n of_o the_o resurrection_n the_o grave_n be_v a_o bed_n of_o rest_n perfume_v and_o make_v sweet_a to_o all_o saint_n by_o the_o death_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o have_v take_v away_o whatsoever_o be_v bitter_a and_o unpleasant_a in_o it_o it_o be_v no_o long_o a_o curse_n to_o the_o saint_n but_o rather_o a_o part_n of_o their_o happiness_n bless_a be_v the_o dead_a that_o die_v in_o the_o lord_n rev._n 14.4.13_o as_o the_o psalmist_n speak_v psal_n 17._o when_o i_o awake_v i_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o thy_o likeness_n that_o be_v at_o the_o great_a day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n after_o i_o have_v have_v a_o long_a sleep_n in_o the_o dust_n when_o the_o night_n be_v past_a and_o the_o day_n of_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v shine_v i_o shall_v awake_v and_o then_o i_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o thy_o likeness_n isa_n 57.2_o
the_o prophet_n have_v a_o expression_n that_o run_v this_o way_n speak_v of_o righteous_a and_o merciful_a man_n say_v he_o they_o shall_v enter_v into_o peace_n they_o shall_v rest_v in_o their_o bed_n and_o when_o stephen_n be_v stone_v to_o death_n the_o holy_a ghost_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o fall_v asleep_a act._n 7.60_o and_o the_o primitive_a christian_n call_v the_o place_n where_o they_o bury_v their_o dead_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d sleep_a place_n the_o earth_n to_o every_o saint_n be_v but_o a_o sleep_a place_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n with_o a_o shout_n and_o with_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o archangel_n and_o with_o the_o trump_n of_o god_n and_o this_o great_a trumpet_n be_v blow_v the_o dead_a in_o christ_n shall_v awake_v and_o rise_v he_o that_o die_v in_o christ_n and_o be_v one_o of_o his_o dead_a man_n do_v not_o die_v but_o sleep_n and_o at_o the_o resurrection_n shall_v in_o a_o moment_n awake_v out_o of_o his_o sleep_n when_o the_o father_n word_n and_o spirit_n do_v make_v the_o fabric_n of_o the_o world_n all_o thing_n be_v speedy_o and_o sudden_o make_v for_o the_o make_n of_o any_o thing_n there_o be_v but_o verbum_fw-la &_o factum_fw-la the_o word_n speak_v and_o present_o the_o thing_n be_v make_v let_v there_o be_v light_n and_o there_o be_v light_a let_v there_o be_v a_o firmament_n and_o there_o be_v a_o firmament_n so_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v speak_v the_o word_n and_o bid_v we_o awake_v in_o a_o moment_n in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n those_o that_o be_v dead_a in_o the_o lord_n shall_v awake_v out_o of_o the_o sleep_n of_o death_n and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n let_v i_o give_v you_o another_o observation_n you_o see_v at_o the_o great_a day_n that_o the_o dead_a that_o lie_n in_o the_o dust_n shall_v be_v raise_v by_o the_o command_n of_o christ_n who_o shall_v bid_v they_o come_v out_o of_o the_o dust_n now_o as_o no_o rational_a man_n will_v conclude_v from_o this_o place_n that_o the_o dead_a who_o it_o may_v be_v have_v their_o dust_n lie_v in_o several_a place_n in_o every_o part_n of_o the_o world_n a_o portion_n of_o their_o dust_n have_v any_o power_n to_o raise_v themselves_o though_o they_o be_v bid_v to_o awake_v even_o so_o when_o god_n speak_v to_o soule●_n that_o hear_v the_o word_n preach_v do_v command_v they_o to_o believe_v repent_v live_v holy_o and_o rejoice_v we_o can_v conclude_v that_o there_o be_v any_o power_n strength_n and_o ability_n in_o the_o creature_n to_o do_v what_o they_o be_v command_v to_o do_v no_o more_o than_o the_o dead_a can_v awake_v of_o themselves_o though_o christ_n command_v they_o to_o awake_v as_o when_o christ_n do_v bid_v lazarus_n come_v forth_o of_o the_o grave_n he_o do_v present_o come_v forth_o though_o he_o have_v not_o any_o power_n in_o himself_o to_o come_v forth_o but_o that_o power_n that_o bid_v he_o come_v forth_o enable_v he_o to_o come_v forth_o so_o though_o christ_n exhort_v we_o in_o the_o gospel_n to_o believe_v and_o to_o do_v good_a duty_n we_o have_v no_o power_n in_o ourselves_o to_o do_v good_a duty_n but_o that_o power_n that_o bid_v we_o do_v good_a duty_n must_v enable_v we_o to_o do_v they_o or_o else_o we_o be_v never_o able_a to_o do_v they_o which_o move_v augustine_n to_o pray_v thus_o dam_fw-la domine_fw-la quod_fw-la jubes_fw-la &_o jube_fw-la quod_fw-la vis_fw-la give_v lord_n what_o thou_o command_v and_o command_v what_o thou_o will_v again_o in_o the_o next_o place_n take_v notice_n that_o those_o who_o shall_v be_v raise_v be_v call_v the_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o dust_n you_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o dust_n the_o dust_n for_o a_o time_n be_v a_o habitation_n for_o the_o saint_n in_o eccles_n 12.5_o it_o be_v say_v man_n shall_v go_v to_o his_o long_a home_n the_o grave_n be_v a_o home_n or_o house_n for_o a_o time_n which_o may_v assure_v we_o of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v entrust_v to_o the_o dust_n that_o which_o dwell_v in_o the_o dust_n and_o no_o other_o thing_n in_o stead_n of_o it_o must_v be_v be_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o dust_n three_o here_o be_v a_o reason_n lay_v down_o in_o the_o next_o verse_n to_o assure_v we_o of_o our_o resurrection_n thy_o dew_n be_v as_o the_o dew_n of_o herb_n the_o lord_n jesus_n in_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n shall_v be_v as_o a_o heavenly_a dew_n upon_o the_o dead_a body_n and_o dust_n of_o the_o saint_n to_o raise_v they_o up_o and_o quicken_v they_o to_o a_o new_a life_n christ_n in_o the_o power_n of_o his_o spirit_n may_v be_v compare_v to_o dew_n for_o three_o reason_n first_o because_o as_o the_o dew_n come_v down_o upon_o the_o earth_n the_o earth_n bring_v forth_o grass_n without_o the_o help_n and_o labour_n of_o man_n mich._n 5.7_o so_o without_o the_o labour_n and_o strength_n of_o the_o creature_n the_o lord_n jesus_n the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n come_v down_o upon_o the_o dust_n and_o ash_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v quicken_v they_o to_o a_o life_n and_o make_v they_o flourish_v after_o they_o have_v lie_v rot_v and_o molder_v in_o the_o grave_n second_o as_o the_o dew_n do_v come_v down_o speedy_o and_o sudden_o upon_o the_o earth_n as_o you_o may_v gather_v from_o that_o expression_n of_o hushai●_n in_o that_o speech_n of_o he_o to_o absalon_n concern_v david_n 2_o sam._n 17.12_o we_o will_v come_v upon_o he_o in_o some_o place_n where_o he_o shall_v be_v find_v and_o light_n or_o he_o as_o the_o dew_n fall_v upon_o the_o ground_n as_o the_o dew_n fall_v sudden_o and_o unexpected_o so_o w●●_n will_v surprise_v david_n so_o the_o lord_n jesus_n will_v come_v in_o the_o twinkle_n of_o a_o eye_n sudden_o upon_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n therefore_o h●●_n compare_v his_o come_n to_o the_o come_n of_o a_o thief_n in_o the_o night_n and_o to_o lightning_n which_o we_o know_v be_v dart_v through_o the_o midst_n of_o heaven_n with_o great_a volubility_n and_o swiftness_n in_o the_o three_o place_n christ_n shall_v be_v as_o dew_n because_o as_o dew_n do_v make_v the_o herb_n on_o which_o it_o fall_v to_o be_v fruitful_a and_o to_o wax_v green_a and_o flourish_n after_o they_o have_v seem_v to_o be_v dead_a so_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v quicken_v the_o dead_a carcase_n of_o his_o saint_n and_o put_v a_o life_n into_o their_o dust_n thus_o moses_n the_o holy_a servant_n of_o god_n speak_v of_o his_o doctrine_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o flourish_a of_o it_o deut._n 32.2_o say_v that_o his_o doctrine_n shall_v drop_v as_o the_o rain_n and_o his_o speech_n shall_v distil_v as_o the_o dew_n as_o the_o small_a rain_n upon_o the_o tender_a herb_n and_o as_o the_o shower_n upon_o the_o grass_n as_o the_o dew_n of_o heaven_n make_v the_o thing_n upon_o which_o it_o fall_v fruitful_a and_o fertile_a so_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n fall_v down_o upon_o the_o dust_n and_o ash_n upon_o the_o rot_a bone_n putrify_v carcase_n and_o skull_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v cause_v they_o to_o flourish_v and_o to_o spring_v up_o and_o they_o shall_v have_v a_o new_a life_n put_v into_o they_o by_o his_o come_n down_o upon_o they_o four_o the_o prophet_n say_v that_o the_o ●arth_n shall_v cast_v out_o her_o dead_a from_o whence_o we_o may_v strong_o conclude_v the_o resurrection_n ●f_n the_o same_o body_n which_o be_v cast_v into_o the_o earth_n that_o body_n which_o be_v dead_a and_o bury_a i●_n the_o earth_n shall_v be_v raise_v out_o of_o the_o earth_n but_o i_o have_v sufficient_o speak_v of_o these_o point_n i●_n my_o former_a discourse_n so_o that_o if_o i_o shall_v speal_v from_o all_o these_o particular_n i_o shall_v rather_o repeat_v what_o i_o have_v say_v then_o present_v you_o with_o new_a matter_n the_o thing_n therefore_o that_o i_o shall_v open_v unto_o you_o to_o day_n for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o your_o joy_n shall_v be_v this_o to_o show_v you_o what_o great_a joy_n there_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o be_v hold_v forth_o in_o these_o word_n awake_v and_o sing_v i_o do_v make_v bold_a to_o finish_v this_o subject_n she_o among_o you_o this_o day_n because_o i_o know_v no●_n whether_o i_o shall_v have_v a_o opportunity_n to_o speak_v to_o you_o again_o from_o these_o word_n and_o see_v i_o have_v handle_v the_o two_o former_a part_n in_o this_o place_n i_o have_v a_o desire_n to_o finish_v my_o discourse_n from_o this_o text_n among_o you_o another_o reason_n be_v because_o i_o do_v find_v some_o familisticall_a spirit_n here_o that_o be_v trouble_v with_o what_o i_o deliver_v be_v enemy_n to_o that_o christ_n who_o come_v in_o the_o flesh_n and_o die_v
on_o the_o cross_n &_o be_v raise_v from_o th●_n dead_a and_o enemy_n to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o resurrection_n which_o be_v to_o be_v wrought_v by_o his_o power_n and_o that_o you_o may_v see_v how_o little_a i_o regard_v the_o speech_n of_o these_o enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o glorious_a resurrection_n of_o saint_n i_o will_v not_o seem_v for_o their_o sake_n to_o desert_n my_o discourse_n therefore_o i_o do_v resolve_v to_o go_v on_o with_o it_o this_o day_n then_o three_o i_o apprehend_v it_o may_v much_o further_o the_o work_n of_o the_o day_n for_o if_o we_o have_v remember_v god_n aright_o in_o our_o praise_n have_v make_v mention_n of_o his_o goodness_n to_o the_o land_n and_o nation_n we_o have_v do_v it_o spiritual_o and_o have_v more_o rejoice_v in_o spiritual_a then_o temporal_a mercy_n and_o if_o our_o joy_n shall_v end_v in_o rejoice_v only_o for_o teporal_a mercy_n we_o shall_v rejoice_v rather_o carnal_o then_o spiritual_o therefore_o have_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o day_n rejoice_v for_o the_o mercy_n that_o god_n have_v show_v to_o the_o land_n i_o think_v i_o shall_v do_v well_o if_o i_o raise_v you_o in_o your_o spirit_n by_o what_o i_o shall_v speak_v from_o these_o word_n and_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o nationall_n mercy_n and_o temporal_a deliverance_n take_v occasion_n to_o draw_v your_o eye_n to_o behold_v by_o faith_n how_o you_o and_o all_o saint_n shall_v rejoice_v when_o you_o be_v deliver_v from_o all_o enemy_n at_o the_o resurrection_n that_o so_o i_o may_v sublimate_v your_o joy_n by_o carry_v you_o high_o in_o ●he_n spirit_n to_o rejoice_v in_o the_o spiritual_a thing_n speak_v of_o in_o the_o text_n awake_v and_o sing_v you_o know_v we_o express_v our_o joy_n by_o sing_v as_o we_o may_v gather_v from_o that_o place_n psal_n 126.1_o when_o the_o lord_n turn_v again_o the_o captivity_n ●●_o zion_n we_o be_v like_o they_o that_o dream_n then_o be_v our_o mouth_n fill_v with_o laughter_n and_o our_o tongue_n with_o sing_v sing_v in_o scripture_n be_v a_o expression_n of_o great_a joy_n if_o any_o be_v merry_a let_v he_o sing_v say_v james_n so_o my_o evangelicall_n prophet_n to_o show_v what_o great_a joy_n there_o shall_v b●_n at_o the_o resurrection_n when_o the_o body_n of_o th●_n saint_n shall_v be_v raise_v he_o bid_v we_o awake_a and_o sing_v so_o that_o this_o be_v the_o point_n there_o will_v be_v great_a joy_n at_o the_o resurrection_n for_o the_o amplify_a o●_n which_o point_n i_o shall_v show_v you_o what_o cause_n o●_n rejoice_v there_o will_v be_v at_o the_o resurrection_n the_o spirit_n and_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n will_v then_o be_v reunite_v together_o again_o which_o be_v disunite_v for_o many_o year_n and_o as_o the_o spirit_n do_v with_o some_o regret_n grief_n and_o unwillingness_n leave_v the_o body_n have_v a_o natural_a desire_n and_o appetite_n be_v plant_v into_o it_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o creator_n after_o union_n with_o the_o body_n so_o the_o spirit_n can_v but_o rejoice_v when_o it_o be_v unite_v again_o to_o the_o body_n therefore_o you_o shall_v find_v the_o spirit_n of_o saint_n under_o the_o altar_n in_o the_o revelation_n 6.10_o cry_v how_o long_o holy_a and_o true_a intimate_v their_o desire_n to_o be_v reunite_v to_o their_o body_n and_o i●_n 2_o cor._n 5.4_o the_o apostle_n there_o show_v we_o that_o though_o the_o saint_n be_v willing_a to_o live_v with_o th●_n lord_n jesus_n christ_n yet_o there_o be_v a_o unwilling_a nesse_n in_o they_o to_o leave_v their_o body_n therefore_o they_o have_v rather_o have_v ●●_o mortality_n swallow_v up_o of_o life_n then_o to_o lay_v down_o their_o body_n in_o the_o grave_n if_o it_o be_v the_o will_n of_o god_n we_o that_o be_v in_o this_o tabernacle_n say_v he_o groan_n be_v burden_a not_o for_o that_o we_o will_v be_v unclothe_v but_o clothe_v upon_o that_o mortality_n may_v be_v swallow_v up_o of_o life_n there_o seem_v in_o these_o word_n to_o be_v hold_v forth_o a_o unwillingnes_n in_o the_o saint_n to_o be_v unclothe_v of_o their_o body_n to_o put_v off_o the_o clothing_n of_o the_o flesh_n we_o observe_v in_o philosophy_n that_o there_o be_v a_o natural_a appetite_n in_o the_o soul_n or_o form_n to_o be_v unite_v to_o that_o body_n that_o it_o once_o inform_v and_o as_o it_o leave_v the_o body_n with_o some_o unwillingness_n so_o there_o be_v a_o desire_n of_o reunion_n when_o they_o be_v part_v so_o that_o reunion_n will_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o joy_n for_o as_o there_o be_v joy_n at_o the_o meeting_n of_o friend_n so_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n that_o be_v long_o together_o in_o this_o world_n shall_v rejoice_v when_o they_o shall_v meet_v together_o again_o this_o be_v one_o ground_n of_o joy_n from_o their_o meeting_n the_o body_n and_o the_o spirit_n shall_v meet_v together_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o reunion_n after_o there_o have_v be_v a_o disunion_n between_o they_o but_o in_o the_o next_o place_n there_o will_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o great_a joy_n because_o there_o will_v be_v a_o absolute_a perfection_n both_o in_o the_o body_n and_o in_o the_o soul_n god_n shall_v be_v perfection_n in_o the_o spirit_n in_o every_o faculty_n of_o it_o and_o god_n in_o his_o glory_n shall_v dwell_v likewise_o in_o the_o body_n the_o soul_n shall_v be_v full_a of_o god_n here_o we_o have_v but_o a_o imperfect_a knowledge_n of_o god_n there_o the_o soul_n shall_v be_v free_a from_o all_o ignorance_n have_v the_o full_a vision_n of_o god_n here_o we_o see_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n dark_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d enigmatical_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v there_o we_o shall_v see_v face_n to_o face_n here_o we_o do_v but_o as_o it_o be_v see_v the_o back_n part_n of_o god_n with_o moses_n as_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n in_o state_n use_v to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o people_n god_n do_v as_o it_o be_v hide_v his_o face_n here_o in_o comparison_n of_o the_o full_a discovery_n which_o he_o will_v make_v of_o himself_o hereafter_o we_o do_v but_o sip_v of_o the_o cup_n of_o spiritual_a joy_n here_o but_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v fill_v with_o the_o river_n of_o the_o pleasure_n of_o god_n here_o we_o have_v as_o austin_n say_v guttulas_fw-la but_o little_a drop_n of_o joy_n but_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v fill_v with_o joy_n here_o we_o have_v a_o sight_n of_o god_n which_o do_v not_o full_o satisfy_v but_o still_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v more_o of_o god_n and_o more_o of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n but_o there_o we_o shall_v be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o likeness_n of_o god_n as_o the_o apostle_n say_v col._n 3._o v._n 4._o when_o christ_n which_o be_v our_o life_n shall_v appear_v than_o we_o also_o shall_v appear_v with_o he_o i●_n glory_n the_o apostle_n say_v 1_o joh._n 3.2_o yet_o it_o do_v not_o appear_v what_o we_o shall_v be_v it_o be_v not_o evident_a to_o we_o what_o glory_n there_o shall_v be_v in_o o●●_n understanding_n how_o our_o affection_n shall_v be_v ravish_v and_o enamour_v with_o the_o love_n of_o god_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n it_o do_v not_o appear_v what_o shall_v be_v in_o our_o spirit_n but_o we_o know_v that_o when_o he_o shall_v appear_v we_o shall_v be_v like_o he_o for_o we_o shall_v see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v o_o what_o tongue_n of_o rhetoric_n can_v express_v this_o what_o it_o be_v to_o be_v like_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n to_o see_v he_o as_o he_o be_v there_o be_v more_o in_o it_o then_o the_o eloquence_n of_o angel_n can_v set_v forth_o unto_o you_o as_o they_o shall_v have_v such_o unspeakable_a glory_n in_o their_o spirit_n so_o likewise_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o glory_n on_o their_o body_n alas_o our_o body_n now_o be_v but_o vile_a body_n weak_a body_n but_o what_o say_v the_o apostle_n phil._n 3._o ult_n god_n shall_v change_v our_o vile_a body_n and_o make_v they_o like_o his_o glorious_a body_n or_o to_o his_o body_n of_o glory_n for_o so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o original_n as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n at_o his_o transfiguration_n be_v change_v and_o his_o face_n do_v shine_v and_o his_o whole_a body_n do_v shine_v with_o heavenly_a brightness_n and_o celestial_a glory_n so_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n shall_v be_v body_n of_o glory_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o heavenly_a brightness_n on_o they_o therefore_o daniel_n speak_v of_o the_o saint_n at_o the_o resurrection_n he_o say_v dan._n 12.3_o that_o they_o that_o be_v wise_a shall_v shine_v as_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o firmament_n and_o they_o that_o turn_v many_o to_o righteousness_n as_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n as_o the_o star_n be_v glorious_a creature_n and_o the_o brightness_n of_o the_o
firmament_n be_v a_o great_a glory_n to_o our_o eye_n so_o there_o shall_v be_v a_o celestial_a star-like_a glory_n upon_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n they_o shall_v not_o be_v gross_a lumpish_a and_o heavy_a body_n as_o they_o be_v now_o but_o spiritual_a body_n as_o swift_a as_o a_o seraphim_n the_o body_n be_v now_o a_o clog_n and_o weight_n to_o the_o soul_n it_o be_v ergastulum_fw-la animae_fw-la as_o the_o platonist_n say_v it_o keep_v the_o spirit_n under_o and_o press_v it_o down_o with_o the_o weight_n of_o it_o but_o then_o the_o body_n shall_v be_v a_o spiritual_a body_n so_o that_o in_o this_o body_n the_o saint_n shall_v ascend_v into_o the_o air_n as_o in_o a_o chariot_n of_o triumph_n and_o glory_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n jesus_n as_o elias_n be_v carry_v up_o to_o heaven_n so_o shall_v the_o saint_n in_o these_o body_n of_o they_o rife_a in_o glory_n to_o meet_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o air_n now_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o disease_n then_o they_o shall_v be_v free_v from_o all_o disease_n now_o they_o be_v subject_a to_o death_n then_o death_n shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o and_o every_o saint_n in_o his_o own_o person_n shall_v appear_v as_o a_o conqueror_n of_o death_n and_o of_o the_o grave_n every_o saint_n shall_v have_v this_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d this_o song_n of_o triumph_n in_o his_o mouth_n o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n the_o sting_n of_o death_n be_v sin_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o law_n but_o thanks_o he_o unto_o god_n who_o have_v give_v we_o the_o victory_n through_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n our_o body_n then_o shall_v be_v incorruptible_a whole_o like_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n therefore_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o the_o body_n it_o must_v be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d phil._n 3._o last_o conformable_a in_o likeness_n to_o the_o glorious_a body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n himself_o you_o see_v what_o perfection_n there_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n though_o they_o be_v vile_a now_o they_o shall_v be_v honourable_a and_o glorious_a then_o though_o they_o be_v now_o as_o piece_n of_o earth_n they_o shall_v be_v then_o more_o bright_a than_o the_o star_n of_o heaven_n or_o the_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n this_o glory_n god_n will_v put_v upon_o the_o body_n of_o the_o saint_n and_o be_v thus_o make_v happy_a in_o their_o body_n and_o spirit_n when_o they_o shall_v see_v themselves_o in_o this_o happy_a condition_n fill_v in_o their_o body_n and_o spirit_n with_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n it_o can_v but_o cause_v great_a joy_n if_o a_o man_n lie_v sick_a a_o long_a while_n and_o have_v a_o weak_a distemper_a crazy_a body_n when_o he_o be_v restore_v he_o rejoice_v that_o he_o have_v health_n and_o strength_n and_o be_v free_v from_o the_o weakness_n that_o be_v upon_o he_o shall_v not_o there_o be_v great_a joy_n then_o when_o the_o saint_n shall_v rise_v when_o they_o that_o have_v weak_a crazy_a and_o vile_a mortal_a body_n here_o shall_v see_v themselves_o in_o body_n of_o glory_n in_o body_n as_o glorious_a as_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n again_o there_o will_v be_v great_a cause_n of_o joy_n to_o these_o saint_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v thus_o unite_v in_o their_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o shall_v meet_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n because_o they_o shall_v have_v great_a dignity_n put_v upon_o their_o person_n they_o shall_v be_v raise_v as_o no_o mean_a person_n as_o wicked_a ungodly_a and_o unbelieving_a man_n shall_v be_v raise_v as_o slave_n and_o vassal_n and_o be_v bring_v forth_o in_o chain_n and_o fetter_n before_o the_o dreadful_a tribunal_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n so_o the_o saint_n shall_v all_o come_v forth_o a●_n king_n every_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v dignify_v with_o the_o glory_n and_o majesty_n of_o a_o king_n this_o be_v that_o that_o be_v speak_v of_o in_o the_o revelation_n where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v make_v 〈◊〉_d king_n and_o priest_n and_o we_o shall_v reign_v upon_o earth_n we_o shall_v reign_v in_o our_o body_n as_o a●_n ambassador_n say_v of_o the_o senate_n of_o rome_n that_o he_o apprehend_v that_o there_o be_v as_o many_o king_n as_o senator_n in_o the_o senate-house_n quo●_n senatores_fw-la tot_fw-la reges_fw-la so_o there_o shall_v be_v as_o many_o king_n as_o saint_n at_o the_o resurrection_n and_o every_o one_o shall_v have_v kingly_a glory_n and_o majesty_n every_o one_o together_o with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n reign_v as_o a_o king_n upon_o the_o earth_n rev._n 5.10_o therefore_o if_o man_n rejoice_v in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o earthly_a kingdom_n and_o crowne●_n which_o be_v line_v with_o care_n that_o a_o king_n profess_v that_o if_o man_n know_v the_o trouble_n which_o attend_v upon_o a_o crown_n no_o man_n will_v stoop_v to_o take_v it_o up_o what_o joy_n will_v there_o be_v when_o we_o shall_v reign_v as_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a king_n with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n again_o there_o will_v be_v great_a joy_n because_o all_o thing_n that_o may_v occasion_v any_o sorrow_n or_o sadness_n shall_v be_v quite_o remove_v away_o all_o tear_n must_v then_o be_v wipe_v from_o the_o eye_n of_o all_o the_o saint_n rev._n 7.17_o there_o must_v be_v no_o more_o sigh_v no_o more_o grief_n no_o more_o sorrow_n all_o earthly_a infirmity_n and_o weakness_n which_o be_v accompany_v with_o grief_n and_o pain_n shall_v be_v remove_v for_o our_o body_n shall_v be_v celestial_a body_n 1_o cor._n 15.40_o raise_v up_o in_o incorruption_n 1_o cor._n 15.42_o and_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o more_o blindness_n or_o blackness_n upon_o our_o spirit_n here_o so_o long_o as_o we_o carry_v sin_n about_o we_o though_o we_o know_v it_o be_v pardon_v though_o we_o know_v it_o shall_v be_v remember_v no_o more_o heb._n 8.12_o though_o we_o know_v in_o point_n of_o justification_n that_o it_o may_v be_v seek_v for_o and_o can_v be_v find_v jer._n 50.20_o yet_o so_o long_o as_o we_o feel_v it_o oppose_v the_o spirit_n of_o glory_n and_o holiness_n in_o we_o by_o the_o filthy_a nature_n of_o it_o so_o long_o it_o will_v occasion_v sorrow_n grief_n and_o some_o trouble_n to_o the_o soul_n but_o at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n as_o sin_n be_v now_o complete_o take_v away_o in_o our_o justification_n to_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o the_o lord_n jesus_n such_o be_v those_o bless_a one_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o 32._o psal_n who_o iniquity_n be_v forgive_v and_o who_o sin_n be_v cover_v so_o then_o sin_n shall_v be_v whole_o take_v away_o to_o our_o own_o sense_n feeling_n and_o apprehension_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o sanctification_n there_o shall_v be_v no_o corner_n then_o in_o the_o soul_n spirit_n or_o body_n for_o any_o lust_n or_o uncleanness_n and_o consequent_o no_o place_n for_o sorrow_n sin_n be_v like_o the_o evil_a spirit_n that_o possess_v saul_n that_o make_v he_o melancholy_a and_o sad_a and_o afflict_v he_o in_o his_o spirit_n but_o when_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n shall_v appear_v than_o all_o sin_n shall_v be_v do_v away_o to_o our_o sense_n and_o feeling_n as_o it_o be_v do_v away_o now_o in_o our_o justification_n then_o we_o shall_v be_v as_o perfect_o sanctify_v throughout_o both_o in_o body_n and_o spirit_n as_o we_o be_v now_o perfect_o justify_v now_o the_o life_n that_o we_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n be_v by_o faith_n in_o the_o son_n of_o god_n by_o see_v how_o complete_o we_o be_v justify_v from_o sin_n lust_n corruption_n those_o enemy_n to_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o we_o carry_v in_o our_o bosom_n but_o then_o we_o shall_v be_v as_o perfect_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o life_n of_o sanctification_n as_o we_o be_v now_o perfect_a and_o complete_a in_o respect_n of_o our_o justification_n so_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o sorrow_n and_o trouble_n shall_v quite_o be_v take_v away_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o place_n then_o leave_v for_o evangelicall_n sorrow_n the_o sorrow_n that_o now_o be_v wrought_v in_o the_o saint_n be_v evangelicall_n not_o legal_a but_o the_o joy_n and_o glory_n which_o do_v remain_v for_o the_o saint_n hereafter_o shall_v be_v so_o great_a that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o place_n then_o leave_v for_o evangelicall_n grief_n for_o any_o sin_n that_o we_o have_v commit_v and_o as_o sin_n shall_v not_o then_o bring_v any_o sorrow_n upon_o we_o so_o neither_o shall_v the_o devil_n who_o be_v the_o troubler_n of_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n be_v able_a to_o afflict_v we_o here_o he_o be_v permit_v to_o afflict_v we_o as_o he_o do_v job_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o patience_n and_o though_o for_o the_o present_a when_o we_o look_v on_o christ_n
in_o his_o person_n we_o see_v that_o we_o be_v conqueror_n over_o the_o devil_n in_o he_o yet_o we_o meet_v with_o the_o devil_n his_o fiery_a temptation_n dart_n and_o arrow_n which_o he_o shoot_v into_o our_o spirit_n so_o that_o he_o ofttimes_o cause_v we_o to_o walk_v something_o sad_o occasion_v trouble_n which_o i_o call_v tempestates_fw-la mentis_fw-la the_o tempest_n of_o the_o mind_n as_o paul_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o be_v buffet_v by_o the_o messenger_n of_o satan_n but_o then_o this_o wicked_a fiend_n shall_v be_v so_o chain_v up_o that_o he_o shall_v never_o be_v let_v loose_a upon_o we_o again_o then_o he_o shall_v be_v so_o under_o our_o foot_n that_o he_o shall_v never_o have_v any_o liberty_n give_v he_o to_o tempt_v we_o any_o more_o the_o accuser_n of_o the_o brethren_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o heaven_n revelation_n 12.10_o his_o accusation_n and_o complaint_n against_o they_o can_v be_v hear_v by_o the_o ear_n of_o god_n to_o prejudice_v their_o justification_n but_o he_o do_v persecute_v the_o woman_n upon_o the_o earth_n rev._n 12.13_o he_o afflict_v the_o church_n and_o bring_v much_o trouble_n ofttimes_o to_o the_o saint_n but_o at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n we_o shall_v be_v free_v whole_o from_o the_o devil_n from_o all_o temptation_n from_o all_o trouble_n all_o enemy_n that_o can_v be_v think_v upon_o so_o that_o then_o thing_n shall_v be_v full_o accomplish_v and_o complete_v for_o our_o good_a the_o apostle_n though_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n for_o the_o present_a have_v abolish_v death_n and_o sin_n to_o we_o 2_o tim._n 1.10_o and_o destroy_v he_o who_o have_v the_o power_n of_o death_n who_o be_v the_o devil_n heb._n 2.14_o yet_o he_o inform_v we_o that_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v to_o we_o in_o christ_n be_v not_o full_o accomplish_v complete_v and_o perfect_v till_o the_o resurrection_n as_o we_o may_v see_v by_o that_o place_n 1_o cor._n 15.54_o then_o shall_v be_v fulfil_v that_o say_n speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n day_n death_n be_v swallow_v up_o in_o victory_n then_o if_o shall_v be_v say_v o_o death_n where_o be_v thy_o sting_n o_o grave_n where_o be_v thy_o victory_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d then_o shall_v it_o be_v that_o be_v it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o full_a accomplishment_n we_o have_v now_o what_o be_v there_o promise_v in_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n then_o we_o shall_v have_v what_o be_v in_o the_o promise_n in_o the_o actual_a fruition_n of_o the_o thing_n promise_v so_o that_o in_o this_o respect_n there_o will_v be_v great_a joy_n because_o then_o every_o saint_n shall_v ride_v in_o a_o chariot_n of_o triumph_n as_o a_o conqueror_n of_o all_o enemy_n in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o as_o christ_n in_o his_o own_o body_n and_o spirit_n do_v ride_v to_o heaven_n and_o triumph_v over_o the_o power_n of_o hell_n death_n sin_n curse_n and_o condemnation_n and_o as_o the_o life_n that_o we_o live_v for_o the_o present_a be_v by_o behold_v this_o victory_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n with_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n so_o at_o the_o general_a resurrection_n all_o the_o saint_n shall_v imitate_v the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o their_o own_o person_n shall_v ride_v as_o conqueror_n triumph_v over_o all_o enemy_n and_o shall_v live_v the_o life_n of_o vision_n see_v the_o same_o thing_n do_v in_o their_o own_o person_n which_o now_o by_o faith_n they_o see_v do_v for_o they_o in_o the_o person_n of_o jesus_n so_o that_o all_o cause_n and_o occasion_n of_o trouble_n and_o sorrow_n be_v take_v away_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v great_a joy_n at_o the_o resurrection_n of_o those_o who_o be_v raise_v by_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o next_o place_n as_o the_o occasion_n and_o cause_n of_o all_o sorrow_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o so_o likewise_o all_o thing_n all_o object_n that_o may_v move_v spiritual_a joy_n shall_v be_v present_v to_o the_o saint_n to_o raise_v their_o spirit_n to_o a_o spiritual_a joy_n who_o shall_v be_v raise_v and_o make_v happy_a with_o the_o lord_n jesus_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v that_o can_v be_v think_v upon_o that_o can_v make_v any_o one_o happy_a that_o the_o saint_n shall_v enjoy_v they_o shall_v enjoy_v god_n in_o a_o full_a measure_n and_o the_o lord_n jesus_n sweet_a stream_n of_o joy_n will_v flow_v into_o their_o spirit_n because_o god_n will_v make_v himself_o the_o author_n and_o worker_n of_o their_o joy_n sing_v o_o daughter_n os_fw-la zion_n say_v the_o prophet_n zeph._n 3.14_o be_v glad_a and_o rejoice_v o_o daughter_n of_o jerusalem_n but_o why_o must_v zion_n sing_v and_o shout_n behold_v the_o reason_n in_o the_o 15._o verse_n the_o lord_n be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o thou_o and_o in_o the_o 17._o ver_fw-la he_o will_v rejoice_v over_o thou_o with_o sing_v there_o be_v the_o chief_a ground_n of_o their_o joy_n lay_v down_o so_o the_o 12._o of_o neh._n 43._o it_o be_v say_v the_o people_n rejoice_v for_o god_n make_v they_o rejoice_v with_o great_a joy_n so_o at_o the_o resurrection_n god_n shall_v make_v they_o to_o rejoice_v they_o shall_v be_v always_o then_o at_o the_o fountain_n at_o the_o wellhead_n in_o thy_o presence_n be_v fullness_n of_o joy_n at_o thy_o right_a hand_n say_v the_o psalmist_n psal_n 17.11_o there_o be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o all_o the_o saint_n shall_v then_o be_v in_o the_o presence_n and_o at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o god_n where_o there_o shall_v be_v pleasure_n for_o evermore_o they_o all_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n god_n shall_v empty_v himself_o and_o the_o river_n and_o stream_n of_o joy_n which_o be_v in_o himself_o into_o their_o heart_n and_o spirit_n so_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v swallow_v up_o into_o those_o stream_n and_o river_n of_o joy_n and_o pleasure_n which_o be_v in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o a_o god_n macarius_n speak_v of_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o ebriety_n of_o the_o spirit_n they_o then_o shall_v be_v inebriate_v with_o the_o fullness_n of_o a_o spiritual_a joy_n if_o there_o be_v such_o rejoice_v here_o in_o the_o spirit_n of_o a_o saint_n when_o he_o have_v a_o light_n from_o god_n to_o see_v something_o of_o god_n in_o the_o face_n of_o christ_n what_o spiritual_a joy_n shall_v there_o be_v when_o our_o joy_n shall_v be_v at_o the_o full_a if_o there_o be_v such_o joy_n in_o the_o ebb_a of_o the_o spirit_n here_o what_o joy_n will_v there_o be_v when_o we_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o high-tyde_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o vision_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o glory_n hereafter_o when_o we_o shall_v eat_v of_o the_o tree_n of_o life_n when_o we_o shall_v drink_v our_o fill_n of_o those_o river_n of_o pleasure_n which_o run_v in_o the_o paradise_n of_o god_n and_o if_o there_o be_v so_o much_o sweetness_n in_o spiritual_a joy_n here_o what_o tongue_n can_v express_v or_o heart_n conceive_v what_o there_o shall_v be_v in_o that_o joy_n that_o shall_v be_v hereafter_o great_a glorious_a and_o high_a be_v the_o expression_n by_o which_o saint_n do_v set_v forth_o the_o joy_n that_o they_o feel_v here_o but_o no_o saint_n can_v tell_v what_o the_o joy_n shall_v be_v hereafter_o at_o the_o resurrection_n psal_n 94.19_o in_o the_o multitude_n of_o my_o thought_n within_o i_o thy_o comfort_n delight_v my_o soul_n the_o delight_n be_v such_o here_o that_o david_n have_v rather_o have_v the_o light_n of_o god_n countenance_n in_o a_o spirit_n of_o joy_n upon_o he_o then_o to_o enjoy_v all_o the_o glory_n and_o great_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n thou_o have_v put_v great_a joy_n into_o my_o heart_n then_o when_o the_o corn_n and_o wine_n of_o wicked_a man_n be_v increase_v psal_n 4._o and_o in_o psal_n 84._o one_o day_n in_o thy_o house_n be_v worth_a a_o thousand_o if_o there_o be_v such_o joy_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o god_n here_o in_o the_o behold_n of_o his_o grace_n in_o the_o kiss_n of_o his_o mouth_n in_o the_o embrace_n of_o his_o son_n when_o he_o do_v now_o sprinkle_v we_o with_o his_o grace_n o_o what_o joy_n shall_v there_o be_v when_o god_n shall_v pour_v out_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n and_o sweetness_n into_o our_o soul_n when_o he_o shall_v open_v all_o the_o treasure_n of_o his_o spirit_n and_o love_n when_o he_o shall_v more_o free_o and_o full_o show_v we_o the_o thing_n that_o neither_o eye_n have_v see_v nor_o ear_n have_v hear_v neither_o have_v it_o enter_v into_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n to_o conceive_v what_o they_o be_v 1_o cor._n 2._o we_o have_v see_v great_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n crown_n sceptre_n riches_n worldly_a pomp_n and_o glory_n but_o what_o be_v all_o these_o thing_n they_o do_v not_o shadow_v forth_o the_o thing_n that_o we_o see_v here_o in_o the_o spirit_n
happiness_n by_o jesus_n christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n thou_o shall_v be_v happy_a with_o god_n and_o with_o jesus_n christ_n at_o the_o resurrection_n in_o body_n and_o spirit_n which_o god_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n grant_v unto_o we_o all_o amen_n a_o postscript_n to_o the_o reader_n when_o one_o make_v a_o motion_n that_o a_o law_n may_v be_v make_v and_o some_o great_a punishment_n inflict_v upon_o parricide_n another_o object_v against_o he_o and_o say_v that_o such_o a_o law_n will_v be_v useless_a because_o there_o be_v no_o parricide_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n neither_o will_v there_o be_v any_o here_o after_o to_o be_v punish_v by_o his_o law_n so_o some_o may_v suppose_v that_o some_o passage_n in_o these_o discourse_n be_v needless_a which_o have_v their_o point_n direct_v against_o the_o face_n of_o blaspheme_a familist_n and_o licentious_a libertine_n apprehend_v that_o there_o be_v none_o such_o among_o we_o for_o the_o present_a and_o that_o there_o will_v not_o be_v any_o such_o who_o may_v come_v up_o as_o from_o hell_n among_o we_o hereafter_o and_o none_o will_v be_v so_o ready_a to_o lay_v this_o charge_n upon_o i_o as_o those_o that_o be_v of_o this_o number_n themselves_o and_o who_o conscience_n do_v inward_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o be_v the_o man_n who_o be_v here_o paint_v forth_o and_o present_v to_o the_o world_n wherefore_o that_o those_o who_o be_v unacquainted_a with_o they_o may_v not_o be_v ensnare_v by_o they_o unaware_o conceive_v that_o there_o be_v none_o such_o to_o deceive_v they_o and_o that_o i_o may_v decline_v the_o hatred_n and_o reproach_n which_o these_o enemy_n of_o the_o lord_n may_v hope_v to_o bring_v upon_o i_o for_o write_v against_o they_o i_o have_v collect_v and_o translate_v some_o few_o passage_n of_o mr._n calvin_n book_n against_o the_o furious_a sect_n of_o libertine_n wherein_o their_o opinion_n and_o practice_n be_v large_o discover_v which_o may_v persuade_v all_o man_n that_o there_o be_v such_o and_o may_v be_v such_o against_o who_o i_o speak_v though_o they_o know_v they_o not_o and_o may_v prevent_v the_o slander_n of_o those_o who_o be_v such_o chap._n 1._o in_o ancient_a history_n we_o do_v never_o read_v of_o any_o heresy_n that_o be_v so_o dangerous_a as_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o libertine_n chap._n 2._o he_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v those_o of_o who_o peter_n speak_v in_o the_o 2_o pet._n 2.12.17_o 18_o 19_o who_o shall_v allure_v man_n to_o error_n by_o their_o great_a swell_a word_n and_o those_o speak_v of_o in_o the_o 10._o verse_n of_o the_o epistle_n of_o judas_n and_o do_v affirm_v that_o he_o have_v never_o understand_v the_o thing_n there_o speak_v of_o unless_o he_o have_v see_v they_o in_o those_o man_n of_o his_o time_n concern_v their_o swell_a kind_n of_o speak_v tumidum_fw-la dicendi_fw-la genus_fw-la he_o have_v these_o expression_n when_o thou_o shall_v begin_v to_o hear_v they_o thou_o will_v be_v ready_a to_o think_v that_o they_o be_v snatch_v up_o in_o a_o ecstasy_n above_o the_o cloud_n for_o beside_o this_o that_o they_o always_o speak_v of_o the_o spirit_n their_o speech_n be_v in_o such_o a_o strange_a idiom_n that_o man_n when_o they_o first_o hear_v they_o do_v stand_v still_o astonish_v in_o admiration_n of_o they_o he_o do_v parallel_v they_o with_o some_o ancient_a heretic_n and_o far_o enlarge_n himself_n concern_v they_o do_v give_v we_o this_o account_n of_o their_o proceed_n at_o the_o first_o they_o reject_v the_o scripture_n and_o scoff_v at_o all_o the_o apostle_n call_v paul_n a_o break_a vessel_n peter_n the_o denier_n of_o god_n john_n a_o stupid_a young_a man_n matthew_z a_o usurer_n but_o afterward_o when_o they_o perceive_v that_o all_o man_n abhor_v they_o they_o conclude_v that_o they_o be_v to_o act_v more_o cautious_o and_o obscure_o and_o then_o they_o pretend_v that_o they_o do_v not_o reject_v the_o scripture_n but_o change_v it_o all_o into_o allegory_n and_o wrest_v it_o by_o strange_a and_o unheard_a of_o interpretation_n transform_v a_o horse_n into_o a_o man_n and_o as_o we_o vulgar_o speak_v feign_v a_o cloud_n to_o be_v the_o horn_n of_o a_o lantern_n of_o their_o subtlety_n which_o they_o make_v use_v of_o to_o deceive_v the_o simple_a he_o afterward_o thus_o speak_v they_o do_v not_o declare_v to_o man_n what_o be_v their_o judgement_n but_o hold_v they_o in_o suspense_n a_o long_a while_n and_o lead_v they_o about_o by_o ambage_n who_o they_o do_v desire_v to_o bring_v to_o their_o sect_n not_o reveal_v their_o secret_n unto_o they_o before_o they_o be_v so_o delude_v and_o bewitch_v by_o they_o that_o they_o see_v they_o can_v persuade_v they_o to_o what_o they_o shall_v please_v etc._n etc._n whatsoever_o christian_n do_v profess_v concern_v eternal_a life_n and_o a_o surrection_n to_o the●_n be_v a_o fable_n chap._n 4._o he_o show_v the_o author_n and_o give_v his_o reason_n why_o he_o write_v against_o they_o shall_v i_o be_v silent_a when_o i_o see_v these_o man_n s●_n abuse_v the_o name_n of_o christ_n that_o pretend_v to_o be_v for_o christ_n and_o in_o his_o name_n bring_v worse_a abomination_n into_o the_o world_n than_o ever_o be_v bring_v into_o it_o before_o shall_v i_o speak_v against_o papist_n and_o spare_v these_o who_o be_v more_o pernicious_a enemy_n to_o god_n than_o they_o and_o do_v more_o overthrow_v the_o truth_n of_o god_n chap._n 5._o where_o he_o discover_v the_o follower_n of_o these_o deluder_n some_o addict_v to_o foolish_a curiosity_n do_v apply_v their_o mind_n to_o vain_a and_o superfluous_a question_n when_o they_o shall_v rather_o follow_v thing_n which_o be_v profitable_a and_o for_o edification_n and_o be_v not_o content_v with_o the_o simplicity_n of_o the_o scripture_n do_v run_v to_o and_o fro_o in_o vain_a and_o frivolous_a speculation_n either_o for_o the_o satisfy_n of_o their_o mad_a and_o wicked_a lust_n or_o for_o the_o persuade_v of_o other_o that_o they_o be_v more_o witty_a than_o other_o man_n and_o do_v follow_v more_o sublime_a matter_n some_o be_v profane_a who_o be_v weary_a of_o the_o yoke_n of_o christ_n be_v willing_a that_o their_o conscience_n shall_v be_v rock_v into_o a_o sleep_n that_o without_o any_o religion_n they_o may_v serve_v the_o devil_n chap._n 6._o he_o wish_v man_n to_o take_v heed_n of_o pride_n rom._n 12.3_o and_o to_o rest_v satisfy_v with_o the_o pure_a and_o simple_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n in_o which_o be_v lock_v up_o the_o infinite_a treasure_n of_o god_n chap._n 7._o of_o their_o idiom_n and_o manner_n of_o speak_v they_o use_v a_o peculiar_a manner_n of_o speak_v which_o be_v not_o understand_v of_o any_o but_o those_o of_o their_o own_o faction_n and_o fraternity_n etc._n etc._n i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o they_o use_v common_a word_n but_o they_o do_v so_o deprave_v their_o signification_n that_o it_o be_v difficult_a to_o find_v out_o what_o they_o affirm_v or_o what_o they_o deny_v chap._n 8._o they_o will_v sometime_o deny_v what_o at_o another_o time_n they_o affirm_v and_o do_v transform_v themselves_o according_a to_o the_o will_n and_o pleasure_n of_o their_o heart_n etc._n etc._n the_o art_n of_o dissemble_v be_v one_o of_o the_o chief_a chapter_n in_o their_o divinity_n they_o will_v conform_v to_o all_o the_o superstition_n of_o the_o papist_n pretend_v that_o a_o christian_a man_n have_v liberty_n in_o all_o outward_a thing_n for_o the_o justify_n of_o their_o lie_a and_o dissemble_v they_o make_v use_v of_o this_o place_n that_o they_o must_v be_v as_o wise_a as_o serpent_n chap._n 9_o they_o account_v the_o scripture_n fable_n yet_o they_o make_v use_v of_o such_o place_n which_o they_o can_v wrest_v to_o their_o sense_n not_o that_o they_o believe_v they_o but_o that_o they_o may_v trouble_v and_o unsettle_v ignorant_a people_n if_o any_o place_n of_o scripture_n be_v bring_v against_o they_o they_o say_v that_o we_o stumble_v at_o the_o letter_n whereas_o we_o shall_v follow_v the_o quicken_a spirit_n although_o they_o be_v more_o pernicious_a than_o the_o papist_n yet_o this_o principle_n be_v common_a to_o they_o both_o that_o the_o scripture_n be_v to_o be_v transform_v into_o allegory_n affect_v a_o better_a and_o more_o perfect_a wisdom_n then_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o chap._n 10._o they_o have_v the_o spirit_n always_o in_o their_o mouth_n and_o can_v scarce_o speak_v two_o little_a sentence_n without_o the_o repetition_n of_o it_o persuade_v man_n that_o they_o be_v spiritual_a and_o altogether_o divine_a by_o which_o mean_v it_o be_v a_o easy_a thing_n for_o they_o to_o deceive_v the_o best_a of_o saint_n until_o they_o come_v to_o understand_v unto_o what_o their_o spirituality_n tend_v and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n he_o give_v a_o good_a direction_n for_o deal_v with_o they_o when_o they_o use_v a_o long_a
not_o require_v but_o forbid_v god_n do_v not_o bid_v we_o to_o work_v but_o he_o forbid_v we_o to_o work_v for_o justification_n it_o be_v not_o he_o that_o work_v that_o be_v justify_v but_o he_o that_o work_v not_o but_o believe_v in_o he_o that_o justifi_v the_o ungodly_a his_o faith_n be_v account_v for_o righteousness_n rom._n 4.5_o when_o the_o apostle_n press_v man_n to_o believe_v and_o persuade_v they_o to_o entertain_v the_o doctrine_n of_o grace_n that_o he_o preach_v in_o those_o exhortation_n there_o be_v a_o virtual_a forbid_v of_o work_v for_o life_n when_o he_o bid_v they_o only_o to_o believe_v act._n 16.3_o it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o he_o have_v bid_v they_o not_o to_o work_v consonant_a to_o that_o speech_n of_o he_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n gal._n 2.16_o he_o exclude_v work_n that_o he_o may_v establish_v man_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o prohibit_v work_v for_o justification_n last_o we_o be_v not_o to_o desire_v the_o presence_n of_o good_a work_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v a_o man_n be_v not_o only_o to_o go_v thus_o far_o to_o be_v convince_v that_o he_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n but_o he_o be_v to_o be_v convince_v of_o this_o that_o the_o presence_n of_o good_a work_n be_v not_o needful_a and_o necessary_a to_o he_o when_o he_o come_v to_o god_n for_o justification_n i_o be_o not_o only_a to_o profess_v that_o my_o work_n have_v no_o influence_n into_o my_o justification_n or_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o it_o but_o that_o good_a work_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o they_o be_v not_o needful_a and_o necessary_a to_o justification_n good_a work_n be_v inefficatious_a to_o justification_n and_o not_o needful_a to_o be_v present_a in_o the_o person_n that_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v here_o some_o fly_v off_o from_o the_o truth_n they_o acknowledge_v that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n yet_o they_o require_v the_o presence_n of_o good_a work_n in_o the_o person_n who_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v but_o god_n when_o he_o efficatious_o work_v upon_o we_o convince_v we_o that_o not_o only_o our_o good_a work_n have_v no_o causalitie_n in_o justification_n but_o likewise_o convince_v we_o that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n for_o the_o presence_n of_o good_a work_n in_o we_o before_o justification_n and_o this_o be_v clear_a because_o when_o the_o spirit_n come_v he_o show_v we_o that_o we_o be_v to_o come_v to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n not_o as_o man_n already_o make_v righteous_a and_o holy_a but_o as_o man_n unrighteous_a and_o unholy_a to_o be_v make_v holy_a by_o jesus_n christ_n so_o that_o good_a work_n be_v not_o necessary_a as_o a_o qualification_n or_o disposition_n in_o the_o person_n to_o be_v justify_v this_o be_v that_o glorious_a gospel_n which_o carnal_a reason_n can_v apprehend_v man_n learning_n can_v reach_v which_o the_o world_n wisdom_n account_v foolishness_n and_o which_o the_o devil_n and_o worldly_a man_n will_v always_o oppose_v and_o persecute_v what_o say_v the_o zealous_a pharisee_fw-mi will_v the_o god_n of_o love_n justify_v he_o that_o hate_v he_o will_v the_o god_n of_o justice_n sit_v upon_o the_o throne_n pronounce_v the_o sinner_n guiltless_a yea_o pharisee_n he_o will_n what_o say_v the_o scripture_n he_o justifi_v the_o ungodly_a what_o be_v a_o ungodly_a man_n but_o he_o that_o hate_v god_n that_o be_v a_o enemy_n to_o god_n that_o do_v not_o for_o the_o present_a love_n god_n and_o when_o a_o man_n look_v to_o his_o grace_n he_o must_v look_v on_o himself_o as_o a_o unrighteous_a as_o a_o unholy_a ungodly_a man_n he_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o come_v as_o the_o pharisee_fw-mi but_o as_o the_o publican_n he_o be_v not_o to_o come_v thus_o qualify_v i_o love_v god_n and_o the_o people_n of_o god_n i_o desire_v to_o obey_v god_n i_o be_o thus_o qualify_v therefore_o i_o shall_v be_v justify_v and_o no_o sinful_a man_n that_o have_v not_o these_o qualification_n to_o fit_v he_o for_o justification_n god_n bid_v sinner_n while_o they_o be_v in_o their_o blood_n to_o live_v ezek._n 16.6_o christ_n come_v to_o call_v sinner_n to_o repentance_n or_o changednesse_n of_o heart_n by_o the_o discovery_n of_o grace_n for_o god_n do_v not_o command_v we_o to_o come_v as_o man_n love_v he_o or_o love_v his_o people_n that_o we_o may_v be_v justify_v but_o when_o we_o see_v ourselves_o sinner_n ungodly_a and_o the_o chief_a of_o sinner_n than_o he_o command_v we_o to_o come_v to_o the_o throne_n of_o grace_n and_z offers_z justification_n and_o salvation_n to_o we_o free_o without_o work_n as_o paul_n say_v this_o be_v a_o faithful_a say_n and_o worthy_a of_o all_o acceptation_n that_o jesus_n christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v sinner_n of_o who_o i_o be_o chief_a 1_o tim._n 1.15_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d i_o be_o the_o first_o of_o sinner_n so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o greek_a primus_fw-la non_fw-la tempore_fw-la sed_fw-la malignitate_fw-la the_o first_o not_o in_o time_n but_o in_o sin_n and_o malignity_n this_o be_v the_o truth_n which_o paul_n preach_v and_o which_o he_o account_v not_o only_o worthy_a of_o acceptation_n but_o all_o acceptation_n for_o the_o sweetness_n and_o excellency_n of_o it_o if_o other_o truth_n be_v worthy_a of_o acceptation_n this_o be_v worthy_a of_o all_o acceptation_n if_o a_o man_n see_v that_o he_o have_v a_o heart_n that_o will_v not_o suffer_v he_o to_o love_n god_n that_o he_o hate_v the_o people_n of_o god_n yet_o hear_v the_o gospel_n preach_v that_o there_o be_v grace_n offer_v to_o sinner_n to_o the_o chief_a of_o sinner_n if_o this_o man_n believe_v if_o he_o come_v and_o trust_v the_o grace_n of_o god_n he_o have_v as_o good_a a_o assurauce_n for_o heaven_n as_o heaven_n can_v give_v as_o god_n give_v to_o any_o that_o he_o intend_v to_o save_v and_o make_v happy_a with_o himself_o to_o eternity_n by_o this_o we_o see_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o bring_v good_a work_n because_o their_o presence_n be_v not_o necessary_o require_v though_o we_o see_v all_o evil_a present_n with_o we_o and_o all_o good_a absent_a we_o may_v rest_v upon_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n for_o justification_n which_o be_v the_o plain_a direct_a way_n to_o true_a and_o perfect_a holiness_n now_o in_o the_o next_o place_n i_o shall_v give_v you_o consideration_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n that_o be_v do_v after_o conversion_n this_o will_v appear_v as_o clear_o as_o that_o which_o i_o have_v deliver_v concern_v the_o needlesnesse_n of_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n for_o our_o justification_n before_o our_o justification_n the_o first_o reason_n which_o i_o shall_v lay_v down_o be_v this_o those_o thing_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o justification_n which_o follow_v justification_n and_o true_a faith_n but_o good_a work_n follow_v justification_n and_o true_a faith_n therefore_o good_a work_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o justification_n the_o cause_n precede_v the_o effect_n good_a work_n be_v the_o effect_n of_o justification_n right_a reason_n therefore_o will_v teach_v we_o that_o they_o can_v precede_v justification_n the_o work_n of_o the_o justification_n of_o a_o sinner_n be_v do_v &_o complete_v before_o work_n be_v do_v and_o therefore_o work_n can_v have_v no_o hand_n in_o our_o justification_n that_o old_a rule_n be_v as_o old_a as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n and_o as_o true_a as_o it_o be_v old_a bona_fw-la operanon_fw-la praecedunt_fw-la justificandun_v sed_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la justificatum_fw-la good_a work_n do_v not_o precede_v in_o the_o person_n who_o be_v to_o be_v justify_v but_o follow_v the_o person_n that_o be_v justify_v from_o which_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o a_o man_n be_v not_o justify_v for_o good_a work_n that_o follow_v faith_n because_o he_o be_v justify_v before_o he_o have_v those_o good_a work_n good_a work_n in_o order_n of_o nature_n follow_v true_a faith_n true_a faith_n work_v by_o love_n gal._n 5.6_o i_o be_o not_o to_o love_v that_o i_o may_v believe_v but_o i_o must_v believe_v god_n love_n that_o i_o may_v love_v god_n joh._n 4.19_o we_o love_v he_o because_o he_o first_o love_v we_o we_o be_v first_o purge_v from_o dead_a work_n by_o believe_v and_o then_o we_o serve_v the_o live_a god_n heb._n 9.14_o god_n have_v swear_v that_o justification_n shall_v go_v before_o sanctification_n luk._n 1.73_o he_o first_o deliver_v we_o from_o our_o sin_n our_o soul_n deadly_a enemy_n and_o then_o we_o serve_v he_o without_o fear_n in_o holiness_n and_o righteousness_n as_o zachariah_n be_v fill_v with_o the_o holy_a spirit_n do_v sweet_o pour_v forth_o the_o holy_a water_n of_o this_o soule-refreshing_a truth_n luk._n 1.74_o 75._o redemption_n do_v antecede_v
purification_n he_o have_v redeem_v we_o from_o all_o iniquity_n to_o purify_v we_o to_o himself_o a_o peculiar_a people_n zealous_a of_o good_a work_n i'faith_o which_o look_v upon_o the_o grace_n of_o he_o who_o be_v invisible_a be_v the_o mother-grace_n radix_fw-la bonorum_fw-la operum_fw-la fides_fw-la faith_n be_v the_o root_n good_a work_n be_v the_o fruit_n there_o must_v be_v the_o root_n before_o the_o fruit_n but_o some_o man_n may_v say_v may_v we_o not_o see_v the_o fruit_n before_o we_o see_v the_o root_n as_o we_o see_v some_o fruit_n upon_o tree_n while_o the_o root_n lie_v hide_v and_o from_o the_o behold_n of_o the_o fruit_n may_v we_o not_o very_o rational_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v a_o root_n so_o from_o the_o behold_n of_o our_o good_a work_n the_o fruit_n of_o true_a faith_n may_v we_o not_o conclude_v that_o there_o be_v faith_n though_o it_o be_v not_o in_o itself_o visible_a unto_o we_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o this_o similitude_n prove_v not_o the_o thing_n for_o though_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n that_o good_a work_n may_v appear_v first_o to_o man_n yet_o faith_n be_v first_o visible_a to_o we_o in_o our_o own_o spirit_n and_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o i_o shall_v see_v the_o truth_n of_o good_a work_n except_o i_o first_o see_v the_o truth_n of_o faith_n evident_a sanctification_n do_v evidence_n unto_o we_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o justification_n but_o sanctification_n be_v not_o evident_a our_o justification_n be_v not_o evidence_v to_o we_o in_o the_o first_o place_n if_o it_o be_v manifest_v in_o our_o spirit_n to_o we_o that_o our_o work_n be_v good_a it_o will_v present_o be_v manifest_v unto_o we_o that_o we_o have_v true_a faith_n but_o this_o be_v not_o manifest_v in_o our_o spirit_n that_o our_o work_n be_v true_o good_a work_n and_o such_o which_o can_v be_v do_v by_o a_o hypocrite_n until_o the_o truth_n of_o our_o faith_n be_v manifest_v unto_o we_o i_o will_v make_v this_o evident_a by_o this_o reason_n a_o man_n must_v see_v his_o good_a work_n as_o do_v either_o under_o the_o law_n or_o under_o the_o gospel_n and_o look_v upon_o they_o either_o in_o the_o glass_n of_o the_o law_n or_o the_o glass_n of_o the_o gospel_n if_o a_o man_n look_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o glass_n of_o the_o law_n and_o do_v right_o and_o spiritual_o understand_v the_o law_n he_o shall_v be_v so_o far_o from_o draw_v a_o assurance_n of_o his_o justification_n from_o they_o that_o he_o shall_v behold_v himself_o curse_v and_o damn_a with_o all_o his_o good_a work_n for_o the_o law_n curse_v every_o man_n that_o continue_v not_o in_o the_o do_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v command_v by_o god_n it_o be_v indeed_o a_o divine_a lookingglass_n in_o which_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v or_o avoid_v be_v discover_v lex_fw-la est_fw-la divinum_fw-la speculum_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la facienda_fw-la &_o fugienda_fw-la refulgent_a aug._n but_o it_o will_v sentence_v we_o to_o death_n for_o the_o least_o spot_n or_o wrinkle_n which_o it_o do_v discover_v so_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o a_o man_n shall_v see_v himself_o justify_v in_o the_o glass_n of_o the_o law_n but_o thou_o will_v say_v he_o may_v look_v upon_o his_o love_n sincerity_n and_o work_n in_o the_o glass_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o if_o he_o look_v upon_o they_o in_o the_o glass_n of_o the_o gospel_n which_o be_v jesus_n christ_n than_o he_o must_v put_v himself_o under_o the_o gospel_n and_o look_v upon_o himself_o as_o a_o man_n in_o christ_n that_o so_o he_o may_v see_v his_o work_n good_a by_o jesus_n christ_n which_o he_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o see_v without_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n which_o see_v thing_n invisible_a heb._n 11._o and_o by_o which_o we_o look_v upon_o christ_n 1_o joh._n 2.1_o dwell_v in_o christ_n ephes_n 3.17_o live_v in_o christ_n gal._n 2.19_o and_o do_v live_v work_n acceptable_a to_o god_n by_o the_o life_n of_o christ_n in_o we_o heb._n 11.4_o by_o faith_n with_o open_a face_n we_o behold_v as_o in_o a_o glass_n the_o glory_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o be_v change_v into_o the_o same_o image_n from_o glory_n to_o glory_n 2_o cor._n 3.18_o and_o see_v that_o our_o good_a work_n be_v the_o effect_n of_o christ_n love_n discover_v in_o himself_o and_o in_o his_o gospel_n to_o our_o soul_n and_o therefore_o when_o john_n do_v inform_v we_o that_o we_o shall_v know_v that_o we_o know_v he_o if_o we_o keep_v his_o commandment_n he_o do_v propose_v believe_v as_o the_o first_o commandment_n of_o god_n without_o which_o we_o can_v assure_v ourselves_o that_o we_o be_v obedient_a to_o his_o other_o command_n 1_o joh._n 3.23_o this_o be_v his_o commandment_n that_o we_o believe_v in_o he_o who_o he_o have_v send_v good_a work_n after_o a_o man_n have_v faith_n be_v not_o the_o cause_n of_o justification_n but_o the_o consequent_a they_o follow_v a_o man_n justification_n they_o do_v not_o precede_v the_o act_n of_o justification_n they_o neither_o precede_v the_o act_n of_o god_n grace_n by_o which_o he_o justifi_v a_o sinner_n neither_o do_v they_o precede_v justification_n in_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n but_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n we_o have_v peace_n rom._n 5.1_o in_o our_o conscience_n this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v frequent_o preach_v by_o those_o heavenly_a carpenter_n which_o do_v first_o strike_v at_o the_o horn_n of_o the_o beast_n ut_fw-la dilectio_fw-la oriatur_fw-la necesse_fw-la est_fw-la praecedere_fw-la fidem_fw-la hoc_fw-la est_fw-la fiducia_fw-la misericordiae_fw-la it_o be_v necessary_a say_v melancthon_n that_o faith_n which_o be_v a_o confidence_n of_o god_n morcy_n do_v precede_v love_n and_o in_o another_o place_n non_fw-la nititur_fw-la fides_fw-la nostra_fw-la dilectione_n sed_fw-la tantum_fw-la misericordia_fw-la promissa_fw-la ut_fw-la constat_fw-la nec_fw-la existere_fw-la dilectio_fw-la potest_fw-la nisi_fw-la sit_fw-la apprehensa_fw-la remissio_fw-la faith_n be_v not_o ground_v upon_o our_o love_n but_o the_o promise_a mercy_n of_o god_n so_o that_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o there_o can_v be_v true_a love_n unless_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v first_o apprehend_v another_o reason_n be_v from_o the_o imperfection_n of_o work_n wrought_v by_o a_o man_n after_o he_o be_v justify_v if_o any_o man_n that_o be_v justify_v look_v on_o his_o work_n and_o do_v not_o behold_v they_o in_o the_o glass_n of_o the_o gospel_n he_o shall_v read_v his_o own_o condemnation_n for_o his_o work_n there_o be_v a_o imperfection_n in_o our_o work_n see_v we_o do_v not_o love_n god_n so_o perfect_o as_o we_o shall_v with_o all_o our_o heart_n all_o our_o mind_n and_o all_o our_o spirit_n but_o while_o the_o regenerate_a part_n through_o the_o power_n of_o the_o spirit_n run_v after_o god_n and_o love_v god_n the_o fleshly_a part_n run_v after_o sin_n and_o hate_v god_n therefore_o see_v there_o be_v such_o imperfection_n in_o the_o work_n that_o we_o perform_v that_o the_o best_a of_o we_o be_v unprofitable_a servant_n and_o that_o the_o most_o holy_a among_o we_o do_v that_o for_o which_o he_o may_v be_v damn_v every_o day_n if_o god_n shall_v not_o deal_v with_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n but_o in_o the_o law_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o a_o man_n can_v be_v justify_v by_o the_o work_n that_o he_o do_v after_o he_o have_v faith_n and_o be_v convert_v &_o do_v work_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o grace_n it_o may_v here_o be_v object_v that_o the_o good_a work_n of_o saint_n be_v perfect_a for_o a_o answer_n to_o this_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o what_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o those_o word_n that_o he_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n sin_v not_o i_o come_v now_o to_o the_o next_o consideration_n which_o be_v this_o that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o practice_n of_o any_o gospel-ordinance_n which_o be_v command_v by_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n there_o be_v some_o who_o it_o may_v be_v be_v convince_v that_o they_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n yet_o i_o know_v not_o what_o new_a kind_n of_o popery_n they_o have_v find_v out_o for_o they_o think_v to_o please_v god_n by_o submit_v to_o ordinance_n and_o find_v out_o the_o true_a discipline_n and_o government_n of_o christ_n church_n therefore_o you_o shall_v find_v a_o kind_n of_o spirit_n of_o bondage_n in_o they_o if_o they_o be_v not_o satisfy_v concern_v the_o true_a discipline_n government_n &_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n wherefore_o i_o shall_v endeavour_v to_o demonstrate_v this_o and_o show_v clear_o that_o as_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o work_n before_o or_o after_o conversion_n so_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v and_o save_v by_o the_o submit_v to_o any_o ordinance_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n salvation_n be_v not_o in_o